16.11.2012 Views

Cultivar Check Lists for Ornamental Plants - Claude E. Phillips ...

Cultivar Check Lists for Ornamental Plants - Claude E. Phillips ...

Cultivar Check Lists for Ornamental Plants - Claude E. Phillips ...

SHOW MORE
SHOW LESS

You also want an ePaper? Increase the reach of your titles

YUMPU automatically turns print PDFs into web optimized ePapers that Google loves.

<strong>Cultivar</strong> <strong>Check</strong>lists <strong>for</strong> <strong>Ornamental</strong> <strong>Plants</strong><br />

Arthur O. Tucker<br />

Department of Agriculture and Natural Resources<br />

Delaware State University<br />

Dover, DE 19901-2277<br />

U.S.A.<br />

Freek Vrugtman<br />

Royal Botanical Gardens (http://www.rbg.ca)<br />

Box 399<br />

Hamilton, Ontario L8N 3H8<br />

Canada<br />

Scott G. Kunst<br />

536 Third St.<br />

Ann Arbor, MI 48103<br />

U.S.A.<br />

Laurence C. Hatch<br />

New <strong>Ornamental</strong>s Society (http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/nosdex.html)<br />

P. O. Box 12011<br />

Raleigh, NC 27605<br />

U.S.A.<br />

Thomas A. Zanoni<br />

The New York Botanical Garden<br />

Bronx, NY 10458-5126<br />

U.S.A.<br />

Tucker-1<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong> <strong>Check</strong>lists <strong>for</strong> <strong>Ornamental</strong> <strong>Plants</strong> 2000 is an updated version of Appendix XI,<br />

<strong>Check</strong>lists of <strong>Ornamental</strong> <strong>Cultivar</strong>s, of the International Code of Nomenclature <strong>for</strong> Cultivated<br />

<strong>Plants</strong>-1995, pp.89-140, which in turn was taken from Arnoldia 55(4):1-59 (1994-1995).<br />

Additions, corrections and updates to this list will appear on these Web pages.<br />

Notice of any corrections, updates and additions would be greatly appreciated and<br />

should be sent to one of the compilers listed above.<br />

Introduction<br />

Gardeners have traditionally traded plants "over the back fence." To many amateur<br />

gardeners, identification beyond "grandmother's pink rose" is not needed. More advanced<br />

gardeners, however, often want to know the correct name of the cultivated variety (correctly<br />

referred to as a cultivar, capitalized and usually placed in single quotes). Is your old white iris<br />

Iris germanica 'Alba', or is it really 'Albicans'? If an expert lives nearby, your problem is<br />

solved, but respected, renowned experts are few and far between.<br />

An even more pertinent, vexing, and persistent problem is authenticating the<br />

identification of purchased plant materials from both mailorder and local nurseries. Nurseries<br />

receive plants under one name, often from a commercial grower, and are frequently slow to


Tucker-2<br />

change. Is your 'Black Magic' iris correctly identified, or is it really 'Eleanore Roosevelt'?<br />

Have you purchased Rosa damascena 'Trigintipetala' because of its anticipated fragrance and<br />

light pink flowers and received instead a hybrid with no damask rose genes, dark pink flowers,<br />

and little fragrance? If you have encountered these and similar problems, you can join<br />

thousands of other gardeners.<br />

The solution <strong>for</strong> the correct identification of cultivars, even <strong>for</strong> the so-called "experts," is<br />

consultation with cultivar checklists and ultimately period descriptions. This brings up another<br />

problem: who has published checklists of your favorite plant group?<br />

This list originated in an attempt to locate pre-1900 cultivars of ornamentals <strong>for</strong><br />

historical restoration work and to verify them by cumulative checklists (Kunst and Tucker,<br />

1989). This goal was expanded in an attempt to locate all cultivar checklists <strong>for</strong> ornamental<br />

plants. Since these lists are often scattered and sometimes difficult to locate, the compilers<br />

make no claim that the list is complete. In the following, we have listed some historical<br />

checklists but have concentrated on the most recent, updated, cumulative ones.<br />

Since the ideal of providing coloured illustrations in checklists is rarely achieved,<br />

especially in the older literature, this list also includes a number of taxonomic and other<br />

botanical and horticultural revisions where cultivars are described and illustrated. For this<br />

reason, we have also included botanical and horticultural revisions when cultivars are described<br />

and illustrated. Good general references to extant cultivars are Harkness and D'Angelo (1986)<br />

and Hatch (1986). The Wisley Trials in the Journal and Proceedings of the Royal Horticultural<br />

Society are recommended <strong>for</strong> cultivar descriptions, while Commissie voor de<br />

Wetenschappelijke Benaming van Cultuurgewassen (1948), Kelsey and Dayton (1942), and<br />

Wright (1984) also discuss many cultivars. The Boskoop award winners are discussed in<br />

Tromp (1986).<br />

Besides numerous cultivar names in the "<strong>Cultivar</strong> & Germplasm Releases" section,<br />

HortScience has become the vehicle <strong>for</strong> publication of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody<br />

plant genera (Clemants, 1995, 1996, 1997, 1998; Huttleston, 1986, 1988, 1989, 1990, 1991,<br />

1992, 1993; Spongberg, 1988, 1989, 1990, 1991, 1992, 1993, 1994a, 1995, 1996; Tebbitt, 1999;<br />

Vrugtman, 1994a), genera at the Arnold Arboretum (Spongberg, 1988, 1989, 1990, 1991, 1992,<br />

1993, 1994a, 1995, 1996, 1997), Kalmia, (Jaynes, 1989), and Syringa, (Vrugtman, 1988, 1991,<br />

1992, 1993, 1994b, 1996, 1997, 1998, 1999). Listings of other cultivar names are supposed to<br />

be maintained by International <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authorities (American Association of<br />

Nurserymen, c. 1987; Leslie, 1986, 1995; Schneider, 1986a; Vrugtman, 1972, 1973, 1977,<br />

1981, 1984, 1985, 1986, 1989c, 1990b, 1990d, 1995), which is currently maintained as the<br />

Directory of International <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authorities (http://www.ishs.org/sci/icra.htm).<br />

The work of these designated authorities is further supplemented by cumulative checklists and<br />

origination lists maintained and published by specialist societies.<br />

The same Web site (http://www.ishs.org/sci/icra.htm) contains an introduction by the<br />

Chairman of the ISHS Commission on Registration and Nomenclature and covers a variety of<br />

topics including: What are ICRAs, Guidance notes <strong>for</strong> ICRAs, Applying to be an ICRA, the<br />

Botanical Code, the Cultivated Plant Code, the ISHS Commission on Registration and<br />

Nomenclature, the Directory of ICRAs, the Directory of families, genera & species with ICRAs,<br />

and How to name a new cultivar.<br />

The rules <strong>for</strong> naming cultivars are covered by Brickell (1980), Greuter (1988), and<br />

Trehane et al. (1995). The American Association of Nurserymen (c. 1987) and Allan (1988)<br />

have published guides <strong>for</strong> the public.<br />

A recent problem that may confuse ef<strong>for</strong>ts to stabilize cultivar names is the use of<br />

trademarks in place of cultivar names. The statement by the AAN that "under Federal law,


Tucker-3<br />

plant variety (cultivar) names may not be trademarked" actually runs counter to the current<br />

practice in some large wholesale North American nurseries. For example, many horticulturists<br />

know the trademark Ilex China Girl TM but have never heard of 'Mesog’, its registered cultivar<br />

name. Finally, the prestigious Modern Roses XI (Cairns, 2000) lists 'Wilwind’, the cultivar<br />

name, with Windmill TM in parentheses, but previous editions confused cultivar and trademarks.<br />

The Townsend-Purnell Plant Patent Act of 1930 provided a 17-year patent protection <strong>for</strong><br />

asexually propagated cultivars, and the Plant Variety Protection Act of 1970 provided 18-year<br />

legal protection <strong>for</strong> sexually propagated cultivars in the United States. This was amended in<br />

1994 to provide 20 years of legal protection to most genera and 25 years of protection to trees<br />

and vines. Updates are provided on-line (http://www.uspto.gov). However, in order to<br />

circumvent this limitation of time, some nurseries have resorted to trademarks (Chadwick,<br />

1988; Darke, 1991, 1992, 1995; Davis and Luby, 1988; E. McClintock, personal<br />

communication, 1990; Gioia 1995; Royon, 1986). While this is allowed by the International<br />

Code of Botanical Nomenclature <strong>for</strong> Cultivated <strong>Plants</strong> (Brickell, 1980), with this practice<br />

different cultivars may be substituted under the same trademark from year to year. While we<br />

understand the monetary reason <strong>for</strong> using trademarks, we must chastise the nursery industry <strong>for</strong><br />

creating a vast confusion in the process, and no solution is envisioned <strong>for</strong> the immediate future.<br />

Ultimately, after having spent good money <strong>for</strong> 'Munstead' lavender because of its<br />

association with Gertude Jekyll, it is disappointing to consult the checklists and realize that you<br />

have really purchased 'Compacta'. However, the nursery catalogs will only be corrected by<br />

gardeners who insist on correct labelling <strong>for</strong> their money!<br />

Abies: see conifers<br />

Acacia: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Acer<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of maples are listed by Bean (1970-1988); Bom (1982); Gelderen, de Jong,<br />

and Oterdoom (1994); Grootendorst (1969a); Harris (1983); Krüssmannn (1984-1986);<br />

Mulligan (1958); Murray (1970); Schwerin (1919); and Weaver (1976b). The cultivars of the<br />

hedge maple (Acer campestre L.) are discussed by bolscher and Nouwens (1999). The cultivars<br />

of the vine maple (A. circinatum Pursh.) are discussed by Vertrees (1979). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of red<br />

maple (A. rubrum L.), sugar maple (A. saccharum Marsh.), Norway maple (A. platanoides L.),<br />

and silver maple (A. saccharinum L.) are listed by Santamour and McArdle (1982a, 1982b,<br />

1982c, 1982d). The cultivars of Japanese maple (A. palmatum Thunb.) are thoroughly<br />

documented by Harris (1982) and Vertrees (1978, 1987) with color photographs. Additional<br />

colored illustrations are in Harris (2000) and Gelderen and Gelderen (1999). The cultivars of A.<br />

×freemanii E. Murray are listed by Lombarts (1998). Additional recent registrations are<br />

recorded in Huttleston (1986, 1989) and Le Duc and Pair (2000). Momiji and Kaede maintain a<br />

web page on maples that includes cultivars (http://www.inh.co.jp/~hayasida/Etop11.html). The<br />

web site of Fa. C. Esveld (http://www.esveld.nl) includes all known cultivars of maples.<br />

Achillea<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Achillea millefolium L., milfoil, with red flowers are discussed by Köhlein<br />

(1989). Hawke (1994b) discusses the per<strong>for</strong>mance of the cultivated yarrows.<br />

Achimenes: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Aconitum<br />

Some of the cultivars of the monkshoods are listed by Lord (1988) and Müssel (1986).<br />

Actinidia<br />

The cultivars of the kiwifruits are listed by Sfakiotakis and Porlingis (1997).


Tucker-4<br />

Adiantum: see ferns<br />

Adonis<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of A. amurensis Regel & Radde are discussed by Fuchs (1992a) and Nakamura<br />

(1964).<br />

Aeschynanthus: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Aesculus<br />

The cultivars of the horsechestnuts are discussed by Bean (1970-1988), Dolatowski<br />

(1992), Grootendorst (1967a), Jong (1996), Jong and Benoit (1997), Krüssmann (1984-1986),<br />

and Wright (1985).<br />

Agonis: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Agapanthus<br />

The cultivars of the Nile lilies are discussed by Duncan (c. 1998) and in the Wisley<br />

Trials of 1977 (Royal Horticultural Society, 1978).<br />

Aglaonema<br />

The cultivars of the Chinese evergreens are listed by Jervis (1980).<br />

Ajuga<br />

The cultivars of the garden bugle are listed by Adam (1982) and Rücker (1995).<br />

Allium<br />

The few cultivars of Allium, the onions, are listed by Davies 1992).<br />

Alnus<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the alders are listed by Ashburner (1986) but without introduction dates or<br />

background. Grootendorst (1972a), Lombarts (1995), and Schneider (1965a) also discuss the<br />

cultivars of alders. An additional registration of Alnus is recorded by Huttleston (1988).<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Alnus are also discussed by Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Aloe<br />

The South African Aloe Breeders Association has circulated an unpublished list of Aloe<br />

cultivars (<strong>for</strong> example,1987), and many cultivars are published in Aloe and other South African<br />

journals.<br />

alpine plants<br />

Books on alpine plants abound, but most emphasize species, not cultivars, and, not<br />

surprisingly, the older literature terms cultivars “varieties” with Latin suffixes. The following,<br />

though, do list cultivars: Bacon (1973), Beckett (1993, 1994), Bloom (1983), Elliott (1935),<br />

Ingwersen (1986), Mansfield (1942), Mineo (1999), Sanders (1922), and Thomas (1989)..<br />

Alsobia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Alyssum<br />

The cultivars of the alyssums are discussed by Dudley (1966).<br />

Amaryllidaceae<br />

Traub and Hannibal (1960) list the cultivars of Brunsvigia with later additions published<br />

in Plant Life. Traub (1961) lists the cultivars of ×Crinodonna with later additions in Plant Life.<br />

Kelsey and Dayton (1942) and Anonymous (1958f) are the first to list the cultivars of the<br />

garden amaryllis, Hippeastrum, but the most comprehensive list is by Traub et al. (1964) with<br />

subsequent registrations in Plant Life. The nerines are listed by Kelsey and Dayton (1942), the<br />

Royal General Bulbgrowers' Association (1991), and Smithers (1993), but the most<br />

comprehensive lists are Menninger (1960), Roberts (1984), and Smee (1984), and Toogood and<br />

Hide (1996) with later additions in editions of Plant Life.<br />

Amelanchier<br />

<strong>Check</strong>lists of ornamental and fruiting shadbush cultivars are Dirr (1987), Hilton (1982,<br />

1984), Lombarts (1998b), and St. Pierre (1992). Krüssmann (1984-1986) also lists cultivars.


Tucker-5<br />

Andromeda<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of bog rosemary, Andromeda polifolia L., are discussed by Denkewitz (1994a)<br />

and Gelderen (1998).<br />

Anemone<br />

Many cultivars of Anemone are listed by Armitage (1987), Genders (1956), and Trehane<br />

(1989). The cultivars of A. nemorosa L. are listed by the Royal General Bulbgrowers'<br />

Association (1991) and Toubøl (1981). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Anemone Sect. Eriocapitella are discussed<br />

by Hop (2001a). The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of A. japonica (Thunb.) Sieb. &<br />

Zucc. are discussed by Clausen (1972a) and Hensen (1968, 1979).<br />

Anigozanthos: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

annuals<br />

The per<strong>for</strong>mance of some summer flowering annuals is discussed by STickel (1995).<br />

Antirrhinum<br />

The cultivars and per<strong>for</strong>mance of the snapdragons are listed by the Royal Horticultural<br />

Society (1913b). The Max Planck institut für Züchtungs<strong>for</strong>s, Köln, maintains a Web page on<br />

snapdragons that includes a cultivar checklist (http://www.mpizkoeln.mpg.de/~stueber/snapdragon/snapdragon.html).<br />

Arabis<br />

The cultivars of Arabis spp., the rock cresses, are discussed by Marx (1990).<br />

Araceae<br />

The aroids are discussed and illustrated by Bown (2000).<br />

Arctostaphylos<br />

The cultivars of the bearberries and manzanitas are recorded by Keeley and Keeley<br />

(1994).<br />

Ardisia<br />

The Japanese cultivars of A. japonica (Hornst.) Blume, the marlberry, are discussed by<br />

Yinger and Hahn (1985).<br />

Argyranthemum<br />

The cultivars of the marguerite are compared and contrasted with studio photographs by<br />

Cheek (1993).<br />

Armeria<br />

The cultivars of the sea thrift, A. maritima (Mill.) Willd., are listed by Köhlein (1998a).<br />

Aronia<br />

The cultivars of the chokeberries are discussed by Hop (1999).<br />

Artemisia<br />

The culivars of the Artemisia spp. are discussed by Hawke (2003).<br />

Astartea: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Aster<br />

The most comprehensive lists of the cultivars of the asters are by Picton (1999), which<br />

should be supplemented with Hetterscheid and van den Berg (1996), Meier (1973a, 1973b,<br />

1973c, 1973d) and Jensma (1989); the latter is being expanded and revised. Kelsey and Dayton<br />

(1942), Royal Horticultural Society (1902, 1908a, 1926a), and Trehane (1989) discuss the<br />

cultivars of the hardy asters, but these are published without introduction dates or background.<br />

Ranson (1946) lists mostly species with few cultivars. The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars<br />

of the asters are discussed by Allen (1983), Clausen (1973a), and Jelitto and Schacht (1990).<br />

The cultivars of A. dumosus L. and the Michaelmas daisy, A. novi-belgii L., are listed by Müssel<br />

(1998b). Barret (1959) discusses the per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of A. ericoides L.<br />

Astilbe


Tucker-6<br />

The most comprehensive published list of Astilbe cultivars is Ievinya and Lusinya<br />

(1975), with c. 170 cultivars, detailed descriptions of c. 50, and an extensive bibliography.<br />

Hensen (1969) discusses the history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of species and cultivars of Astilbe. Jelitto<br />

and Schacht (1990), the Royal Horticultural Society (1970b), Schneider (1968), and Trehane<br />

(1989) also list cultivars of Astilbe.<br />

Astrantia<br />

The cultivars of the masterworts are recorded by Kaiser (1998).<br />

Aubrieta<br />

The cultivars of A. columnae Guss., A. deltoidea (L.) DC., and A. intermedia Heldr. &<br />

Orph. are thoroughly discussed by Clausen (1973c) and Hensen (1976). Jelitto and Schacht<br />

(1990) and Trehane (1989) also list cultivars of Aubrieta.<br />

Aucuba<br />

The cultivars of Japanese laurel, A. japonica Thunb., are discussed by Eggins (2000).<br />

Australian (& South African) plants<br />

The function of the Australian <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority (ACRA) <strong>for</strong> endemic<br />

plants of Australia is outlined by Butler (1995). ACRA has circulated a continually updated list<br />

(<strong>for</strong> example, 1988) of registered cultivars of Acacia, Agonis, Anigozanthos, Astartea, Baeckea,<br />

Banksia, Baura, Blechnum, Boronia, Brachychiton, Brachycome, Callistemon, Callitris,<br />

Ceratopetalum, Chamelaucium, Correa, Crowea, Epacris, Eremophila, Eriostemon,<br />

Eucalyptus, Eucryphia, Grevillea, Hakea, Hardenbergia, Helichrysum, Hypocalymma,<br />

Kennedia, Kunzea, Lechenaultia, Leptospermum, Lophostemon, Melaleuca, Myoporum,<br />

Pandorea, Pimelea, Plectranthus, Prostanthera, Pultenaea, Scaevola, Spyridium Telopea, and<br />

Tetratheca. Roger Spencer (1995-1997) has published two volumes of his Horticultural Flora<br />

of South-eastern Australia; this includes many cultivars, not necessarily Australian.<br />

Baccharis<br />

Laurence C. Hatch maintains a web page on the cultivars of Baccharis<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/bacchar.html).<br />

Baeckea: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Banksia: see Australian (& South African) plants and Proteaceae<br />

Baura: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Begonia<br />

The most comprehensive checklist of begonias is Ingles (1990). This should be<br />

supplemented with Brilmayer (1960), Kelsey and Dayton (1942), Kramer (1967), Thompson<br />

(1976-1978, 1984), and Thompson and Thompson (1980, 1982). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of B. semperflorenscultorum<br />

hybrids are published by Maatsch (1962), Maatsch and Nolting (1969, 1971a), and<br />

Nolting and Zimmer (1975a, 1980a, 1985, 1987). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of tuberous begonias are listed by<br />

Haegeman (1978, 1979) and Langdon (1969). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of other begonias are published by the<br />

American Begonia Society (1957, 1958, 1962, 1967, 1985). Registrations in The Begonian are<br />

summarized by Vrugtman (1972). These should be used in conjunction with Japan Begonia<br />

Society (1980), Misono (c. 1974-1978), and Thompson and Thompson (1981).<br />

Berberis<br />

Schneider (1923) covers the publication history and descriptions of cultivars of the<br />

barberries. The cultivars of the barberries are also listed by Ahrendt (1942, 1949, 1961), Bärtels<br />

(1998a), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Laar (1972), and Wyman (1962b). The red-leaved barberries<br />

are listed by Bärtels (1995).<br />

Bergenia<br />

The cultivars of the bergenias are discussed by Beckett (1983), Kress (1996), Laar<br />

(1973), and Yeo (1971a, b).


Tucker-7<br />

Betula<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the birches are listed by Ashburner (1980), Fontaine (1970a), Grootendorst<br />

(1973a), Jong (1986), Santamour and McArdle (1989), and Wyman (1962c). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of<br />

Betula are also discussed by Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Blechnum: see ferns<br />

Boronia: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Bougainvillea<br />

The most comprehensive discussions of cultivars of bougainvillea are Choudhury and<br />

Singh (1981); MacDaniels (1981); Swithinbank (1995); and Singh, Panwar, and Voleeti (1999).<br />

Previous checklists are Anonymous (1959c) and Gillis (1976). Holttum (1938) outlines the<br />

genetic history of many cultivars. Subsequent registrations are recorded by Singh (1986, 1987,<br />

1999).<br />

Brachychiton: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Brachycome: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Bromeliaceae<br />

A preliminary checklist of bromeliad cultivars has been prepared by Beadle (1991) and<br />

the Bromeliad Society (1989). The Bromeliad Society International discusses cultivar<br />

registration on their Web page (http://BSI.org)<br />

Brugmansia/Datura<br />

The cultivars of the angel’s trumpets are illustrated on a Web page copyrighted by Vicki<br />

Harding (<strong>for</strong>merly http://home.att.net/~perennials/menu.html, now moving).<br />

Brunsvigia: see Amaryllidaceae<br />

Bucinellina: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Buddleja<br />

The cultivars of the butterfly bushes are listed by Leeuwenberg (1979) but without dates<br />

of introduction or hybridizers. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the butterfly bushes are also discussed by Bean<br />

(1970-1988), Grootendorst (1972b), and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

bulbs<br />

The cultivars of many hardy and tender bulbs are published by the Royal General<br />

Bulbgrowers' Association (most recent is 1991). Many cultivars are also listed in Anonymous<br />

(1994), Bryan (1989, 2002), Hay and Synge (1969), Ogden (1994), Rix and <strong>Phillips</strong> (1981),<br />

Royal Horticultural Society (1992d), Trehane (1989).<br />

Buxus<br />

A guide <strong>for</strong> registration and documentation of cultivar names of Buxus is provided by<br />

Dudley and Eisenbeiss (1971). The cultivars of boxwood are listed by Bean (1970-1988),<br />

Batdorf (1987, 1989, 1995), Hawke (1994c), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Wagenknecht (1965,<br />

1967, 1971, 1972), but the best overall, thorough discussion of boxwood cultivars is Larson<br />

(1996).<br />

Cactaceae<br />

The cultivars of epiphytic cacti, alias epicacti or orchid cacti, are thoroughly discussed<br />

by Haselton (1951), Meier (1994, 1995), and Rainbow Gardens (1979). This should be<br />

supplemented with Hashizume (c. 1982-1985), who provides good color photographs and<br />

English captions in his guide to epicacti; additional color photographs are presented by Leue (c.<br />

1987). The cultivars of Schlumbergera are discussed by Horobin (1985) and O’Leary and<br />

Boyle (2000). The genetic diversity of Hatiora is discussed by O’Leary and Boyle (1999). A<br />

few cultivarsof cacti are illustrated by Innes and Glass (1999).<br />

Caladium


Tucker-8<br />

The cultivars of the caladiums are discussed by Waite (1996) and evaluated <strong>for</strong><br />

landscaping by Wilfret (1984).<br />

Callistemon: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Callistephus<br />

The cultivars of the China aster, C. chinensis (L.) Nees, are assembled into checklists by<br />

Maatsch (1958, 1964), Maatsch and Nolting (1971c), Nolting and Zimmer (1975c, 1981, 1987),<br />

Olmsted et al. (1923), and Zimmer and NOack (1998).<br />

Callitris: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Calluna<br />

A guide to naming heather cultivars is McClintock (1986). Bean (1970-1988), Chapple<br />

(1951), Flecken (1998), Johnson (1956), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Laar (1968, 1970a, 1974,<br />

1977a), Letts (1966), Proudley and Proudley (1974), and Underhill (1990) list many cultivars of<br />

heathers. Munson (1981, 1984) provides a comprehensive key to the species and cultivars of<br />

Calluna with full botanical descriptions in the 1981 thesis. Dwarf cultivars are discussed by<br />

Denkewitz (1994b), while double-flowered cultivars are discussed by Denkewitz (1989).<br />

Camellia<br />

Bean (1970-1988), Durrant (1982), Erdman (1949), Feathers and Brown (1978),<br />

Gerbing (1945), Hertrich (1954-1959), Hume (1955), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Longhurst and<br />

Savige (1982), Macoboy (1981, 1998), Mikolajski (199b), Noble and Graham 1962), Royal<br />

Horticultural Society (1990e, 1992h, 1993e, 1994f, 1997d, 1998h, 2000e), and Sharp (1957) list<br />

many cultivars of camellias, but Woodroff and Donnan (1990) is probably the best compact<br />

checklist, while Savige (1993) is probably the most complete list with 41,000 cultivars. The<br />

Japanese cultivars of camellias are listed by Tuyama (1968), while the Chinese cultivars are<br />

listed by the Kunming Institute of Botany, Academia Sinica (1986). Huntington Botanical<br />

Gardens (2001) has published a list of their camellias.<br />

Campanula<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of the bellflowers are discussed by Clausen<br />

(1976) and Lewis and Lynch (1989). Lewis and Lynch (1998) Trehane (1989) also list some of<br />

the cultivars of the bellflowers.<br />

Campsis<br />

Laurence C. Hatch maintains a web page on the cultivars of Campsis<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/campsis.html).<br />

Canna<br />

Kelsey and Dayton (1942) have published a list of canna cultivars without dates and<br />

hybridizers. Additional in<strong>for</strong>mation is given by the Royal General Bulbgrowers' Association<br />

(1991), Royal Horticultural Society (1908b, 1909), and Trehane (1989). Mukherjee and<br />

Khoshoo (1970) provide botanical characteristics of many cultivars. Cooke (2001) is<br />

particularly recommended <strong>for</strong> the good photographs and rather complete list of cultivars.<br />

Cannabis<br />

Snoeijer (2002) lists 725 cultivars of Cannabis.<br />

Capsicum<br />

The peppers are sometimes grown as ornamentals (e.g., 'Fips'), and Andrews (1984)<br />

records extensive in<strong>for</strong>mation on these cultivars in her monumental book. Excellent colored<br />

photographs of the peppers are in DeWitt and Bosland (1993, 1996), DeWitt and Gerlach<br />

(1990), Hanson (1999), and Miller (1991). Nijmegen, NL, maintains a Capsicum variety<br />

database (http://www-sci.sci.kun.nl/bgard/).<br />

carnivorous plants<br />

Named cultivars of Drosera, Nepenthes, and Sarracenia are listed by Schlauer (1986,


Tucker-9<br />

1987; note that the first list neglects to capitalize the cultivar names) and Kusakabe (1987).<br />

Additional cultivars of Sarracenia are later listed by Mellichamp and Gardner (1987), Nelson<br />

(1986), and Romanowski (2002). The hybrids of Nepenthes are reported by Fleming (1979).<br />

Fleming's list is reprinted in Pietropaolo and Pietropaolo (1986). An additional cultivar of<br />

Nepenthes is listed by Robinson (1989).<br />

Carpinus<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Ostrya, the hop hornbeams, and Carpinus, the hornbeams, are discussed by<br />

Rush<strong>for</strong>th (1985), Schneider (1965a), and Wright (1986). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Carpinus and Ostrya are<br />

also discussed by Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Castanea<br />

The cultivars of the potentially blight-resistant chestnuts are discussed by Jaynes and<br />

Graves (1963) and Nienstaedt and Graves (1955).<br />

Catharanthus<br />

The cultivars of the Madagascar periwinkle are discussed by Bergen and Snoeijer<br />

(1996).<br />

Ceanothus<br />

Van Rensselaer and McMinn (1942) provide the most comprehensive listing of the wild<br />

lilacs and buckrushes. Additional cultivars are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Hogan (1988),<br />

Huttleston (1986), Keeley and Keeley (1994), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Schmidt (1962), Smith<br />

(1979), and Gelderen (1992).<br />

Ceratopetalum: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Cercidiphyllum<br />

The classification and nomenclature of weeping katsuras is discussed by Dosmann et al.<br />

(2003).<br />

Cercis<br />

The cultivars of the redbuds are discussed by Bärtels (1993a) and Raulston (1990).<br />

Chaenomeles<br />

The cultivars of the Japanese quinces are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Grootendorst<br />

(1968a), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Weber (1963).<br />

Chamelaucium: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Chrysanthemum: see Argyranthemum <strong>for</strong> the marguerite and Dendranthema <strong>for</strong> the florist's<br />

chrysanthemum<br />

Cistus<br />

The cultivars of the rock roses are discussed by Bean (1970-1988), Warburg (1931), and<br />

Warburg and Warburg (1930). The Cistus and Halimium hybrids of Eric Sammons are<br />

discussed by Page (1998).<br />

Citrus<br />

The cultivars of Citrus, some ornamental, are listed by Hodgson (1967).<br />

Clematis<br />

General clematis checklists are Johnson (2001) and Lloyd (1965, 1989. Fretwell (1989),<br />

Grey-Wilson (2000), Evison (1998), and Toomey and Leeds (2001) provide good color<br />

photographs. The cultivars of C. viticella L. are listed by Rogerson (1985). The large-flowered<br />

clematis hybrids are published by Evison (1985) and Spingarn (1935), while the hybrids of<br />

section Atragene are published by Pringle (1973). Hörsch (1994) discusses the cultivars of<br />

Clematis viticella L. Yellow-flowering clematis (section Meclaitis) are discussed by<br />

Brandenburg (2000). Kelsey and Dayton (1942) also provide a list of Clematis but without<br />

introduction dates and background. Some cultivars are also published by Evison (1995), Hawke<br />

(1997a), Laar (1985) Markham (1935), and Trehane (1989). Victoria Matthews, as the


Tucker-10<br />

International Clematis Registrar, maintains a Web page with the registered cultivars of the last<br />

several years (http://dspace.dial.pipex.com/clematis/registrar.htm), as discussed in Matthews<br />

(2003). See, also, the the ICRA <strong>for</strong> Clematis<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_clematis.asp).<br />

Codiaeum<br />

The list <strong>for</strong> the garden croton, Codiaeum variegatum (L.) Blume, of Kelsey and Dayton<br />

(1942) provides no introduction dates or background. Additional cultivars are listed by<br />

Anonymous (1959a) and Brown (1960). The latter provides good color illustrations but also<br />

includes a number of botanical errors.<br />

Coleus-Solenostemon-Plectranthus<br />

While no proper checklist exists <strong>for</strong> coleus cultivars, Pedley and Pedley (1974) and<br />

Stout (1916) provide many materials <strong>for</strong> the production of such a list. Recent registrations of<br />

Plectranthus are listed by the Australian <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority (1988). Trials of suntolerant<br />

coleus in Florida are discussed by Leu (2002). See, also, the web page on coleus<br />

(http://www.Coleusfinder.org).<br />

Columnea: see Gesneriaceae<br />

conifers<br />

Lewis (1986a, b) provides a guide <strong>for</strong> the naming of conifer cultivars. The Royal<br />

Horticultural Society has started an ambitious registry of conifers; so far Abies to Pherosphaera<br />

have been published (Lewis, 1993; Royal Horticultural Society, 1985d, 1987b, 1989h, 1992g;<br />

Trehane, 1995). Meanwhile, Welch and Haddow (1993) have published a world checklist of<br />

conifers. The classic reference is Dallimore, Jackson,and Harrison (1966), but dates are absent.<br />

Den Ouden and Boom (1978) and Krüssmann (1985) present the cultivated conifers with<br />

introduction dates and descriptions, while Cope (1986) provides scant in<strong>for</strong>mation on dates or<br />

origins. Welch (1991) is an up-dating of both den Ouden and Boom, (1978) and Welch (1979).<br />

Many cultivars of conifers are also listed by Anonymous (1967, 1977, 1988, 1990) and Bean<br />

(1970-1988). The most comprehensive, up-to-date listing of cultivars of conifers is at the web<br />

site <strong>for</strong> the Conifer Society (http://www.conifersociety.org/database.html). Munson (1973) has<br />

prepared a vegetative key to dwarf and slow-growing confiers, while Obrizok (1991a, b)<br />

provides growth <strong>for</strong>ms of dwarf conifers. The cultivars of the firs (Abies spp.) and spruces<br />

(Picea spp.) are listed by Gelderen (1975). Silver firs, Abies alba Mill., are discussed by<br />

Horsman (1984), while Laurence C. Hatch maintains a Web page of cultivars<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/abiechek.html). Plum yews, Cephalotaxus spp., are<br />

discussed by Zhang, Dirr, and Price (2000). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Lawson cypress or Port Or<strong>for</strong>d cedar,<br />

Chamaecyparis lawsoniana (A. Murr.) Parl., are discussed by Bärtels (1991b). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of<br />

Hinoki cypress, Chamaecyparis obtusa (Siebold & Zucc.) Endl., are discussed by Bärtels<br />

(1991a). Japanese cedar, Cryptomeria japonica (L. fil.) G. Don, cultivars are treated by Bärtels<br />

(1989a); Fantz, Rouse, and Bilderback (1999); Kortmann (1987); Rouse, Fantz, and Bilderback<br />

(1997, 2000a, 2000b); and Tripp (1993). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the Leyland cypress, ×Cupressocyparis<br />

leylandii (Dallim. & A. B. Jackson) Dallim., are listed by Mitchell (1986) and Orlóci (1999).<br />

Juniper (Juniperus spp.) cultivars are discussed by Gelderen (1984) and Grootendorst (1968c),<br />

and Laurence C. Hatch maintains a web page on junipers<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/juniper.html). Pine (Pinus spp.) cultivars are listed by<br />

Gelderen (1982), while the cultivars of moutain pine (P. mugo Turra) are listed by Kortmann<br />

(1999) and Japanese five needle pine (P. parviflora Sieb. & Zucc.) are listed by Valavanis<br />

(1976). The dwarf cultivars of giant redwood, Sequiadendron giganteum (Lindl.) Buchh., are<br />

listed by Kools (2000). Laurence C. Hatch maintains a web page on Taxodium cultivars<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/taxodium.html). The cultivars of yews, Taxus, are listed


Tucker-11<br />

by Chadwick and Keen (1976) an Cope (1998). The cultivars of American arborvitae, Thuja<br />

occidentalis L., are listed by Grootendorst (1971b), while Wyman (1961c) discusses cultivars of<br />

four arborvitae species. Hemlock (Tsuga spp.) cultivars are documented in Bärtels (1994a), Del<br />

Tredici (1987), and Swartley (1984). These should be supplemented with the color photographs<br />

of Harrison (1975) and Gelderen and van Hoey Smith (1986) and the black and white<br />

photographs of Welch (1979). See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong> conifers<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_conifers.asp).<br />

Cordyline<br />

A list <strong>for</strong> the cultivars of the ti, Cordyline terminalis (L.) Kunth, is Kelsey and Dayton<br />

(1942) but without introduction dates and background. Additional cultivars are listed by<br />

Anonymous (1959d).<br />

Coreopsis<br />

The cultivars of the Coreopsis spp., tickseeds, are discussed by Rücker (1988).<br />

Cornus<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the dogwoods are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Gelderen (1988b), Hartlage<br />

(1999), Howard (1961), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Plietzsch and Jesch (1994), Santamour and<br />

McArdle (1985a), and Wieting (1992). Jaynes, Brand, and Arnow list the cultivars of the kousa<br />

or Japanese dogwood, C. kousa Hance. Additional registrations are recorded by Spongberg<br />

(1988, 1990, 1997).<br />

Correa: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Corydalis<br />

The cultivars of the Corydalis spp. Are discussed by Lidén and Zetterlund (1997).<br />

Corylus<br />

Bibliographic references to the cultivars of the filberts are recorded by Debor (1978),<br />

while Bärtels (1990) discusses the leading ornamentals..<br />

Cosmos<br />

The Indian cultivars of cosmos are listed by Anonymous (1959b).<br />

Cotinus<br />

The cultivars of the smoke trees, Cotinus coggyria Scop., are discussed by Bärtels<br />

(1994b).<br />

Cotoneaster<br />

The cultivars of the rock sprays are treated by Bean (1970-1988), Fryer (1996),<br />

Grootendorst (1966a), Hachmann et al. (1987), and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Crataegus<br />

Wyman (1962d) lists the cultivars of the hawthorns but with few introduction dates and<br />

little background. Bean (1970-1988), Grootendorst (1967c), Jong (1999), and Krüssmann<br />

(1984-1986) also discuss the cultivars of the hawthorns.<br />

×Crinodonna: see Amaryllidaceae<br />

Crinum<br />

The cultivars of the spider lilies are listed by Hannibal (1970-71).<br />

Crocosmia<br />

The cultivars of the montbretias are listed by Dunlop (1999) and Kostelijk (1984).<br />

Crocus<br />

The cultivars of crocus are documented by the Royal General Bulbgrowers' Association<br />

(1991), but further in<strong>for</strong>mation is provided by Bowles (1952), Ruksans (1981) and Trehane<br />

(1989). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of C. chrysanthus (Herb.) Herb. are discussed by Erhardt (1988a).<br />

Crowea: see Australian (& South African) plants


Tucker-12<br />

Cryptomeria: see conifers<br />

×Cupressocyparis: see conifers<br />

Cyclamen<br />

Some cultivars of Cyclamen are recorded by Grey-Wilson (1988), the Royal General<br />

Bulbgrowers' Association (1991), Trehane (1989), and Wellensiek (1961). A comprehensive<br />

list of cultivars is Wellensiek et al., (1961).<br />

Cytisus<br />

The cultivars of the brooms (Cytisus and Genista) are treated by Bean (1970-1988),<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986), Laar (1971), and Pardatscher and Flubacher (1993).<br />

Daboecia<br />

Daboecia cultivars are included in many listings of heaths and heathers (e.g., Johnson,<br />

1956; Munson, 1981; Underhill, 1971), and separately by Bean (1970-1988), Krüssmann (1984-<br />

1986), and Laar (1977b).<br />

Dahlia<br />

The most comprehensive checklist of dahlias is that of the Royal Horticultural Society<br />

(1969a) and later supplements (1988d, 1989c, 1992a, 1994e, 1995d, 1995e, 1996c, 1997a,<br />

1998e, 1999b). Un<strong>for</strong>tunately, with one exception (a cultivar from 1850), this list omits all<br />

cultivars 1789-1859 and many of the cultivars 1860-1900. Many early twentieth-century<br />

cultivars are amply covered in Norton (1924), Olmsted et al. (1923), and Sandhack (1927).<br />

Recent cultivars are listed by the American Dahlia Society (e.g., 1989) in a paperbound booklet<br />

as a supplement to the Bulletin of the American Dahlia Society. The early history (1791-1836)<br />

of dahlias is covered by Hansen and Hjerting (2000). Good colored illustrations are provided<br />

by Rowlands (1999). See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong> Dahlia<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_dahlia.asp).<br />

Dalbergaria: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Daphne<br />

The cultivars of Daphne are listed by Brickell and Mathew (1976). Bean (1970-1988),<br />

Hodgkins (1961), and Krüssmann (1984-1986) also discuss the cultivars of Daphne.<br />

Delphinium<br />

The Royal Horticultural Society (1970a) is a checklist of delphinium names which<br />

updates a list previously published in 1949. The Delphinium Society has listed culitvars<br />

(Cooper, 1984, 1986, 1987, 1989, 1990b, 1991, 1992, 1993, 1994), but the Royal Horticulutral<br />

Society (1996a) is currently in charge of the international registration of cultivars. Edwards<br />

(1987) and Trehane (1989) are recent lists of cultivars. Bishop (1949), Cooper (1990a),<br />

Edwards (1989), Genders (1963a), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Ogg (1961), <strong>Phillips</strong> (1933), and<br />

the Royal Horticultural Society (1926e) also list many cultivars. Kelsey and Dayton (1942) also<br />

list of delphiniums but without introduction dates and background. See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong><br />

Delphinium (http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_delphinium.asp).<br />

Dendranthema (Chrysanthemum)<br />

The cultivars of D. ×grandiflorum (Ramat.) Kitamura, or florist's chrysanthemum are<br />

first listed by Olmsted et al. (1923) and Kelsey and Dayton (1942). These lists omit all cultivars<br />

1789-1889. Cumming (1964) presents some history. Scott and Scott (1950) are also<br />

recommended <strong>for</strong> early cultivars and hybridizers. Additional cultivars are listed by Gosling<br />

(1964, 1973b, 1980), Lock (1989), and the [U.S.] National Chrysanthemum Society (1991).<br />

Genders (1961a), Gosling (1973a), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), and Trehane (1989) also list<br />

some culivars. Niwa (1936) should be consulted <strong>for</strong> Japanese cultivars.<br />

Desmodium


Tucker-13<br />

The cultivars of the tick trefoils are listed by Lemmens (1985).<br />

Deutzia<br />

The cultivars of the deutzias are discussed by Bärtels (1992a), Bean (1970-1988) and<br />

Krüssmann (1958b).<br />

Dianthus<br />

The Royal Horticultural Society has published the international register <strong>for</strong> pinks and<br />

carnations (1983) with supplements (1984b, 1985b, 1986b, 1988b, 1988c, 1989b, 1990a, 1991d,<br />

1992f, 1883c, 1994c, 1995b, 1996d, 1997b, 1998b, 1999a, 2000a, 2001a, 2002a), which<br />

supersedes the 1974 list. These lists are very comprehensive, but American cultivars (such as<br />

'Aqua') are slow to be integrated. These checklists should be used in conjunction with Bailey<br />

(1990), Genders (1962b), Mansfield (1951), Sitch (1975), and Smith (1990). Hensen (1981)<br />

discusses the history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of D. gratianopolitanus Vill. and D. plumarius L. Kelsey<br />

and Dayton (1942) include American carnation cultivars. Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and<br />

Trehane (1989) also list many cultivars of perennial Dianthus. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s derived from D.<br />

gratianopolitanus are discussed by Köhlein (1991a), while cultivars of D. plumarius and the<br />

Allwood pinks are discussed by Köhlein (1991b). Good colored illlsutrations of the carnations<br />

are provided by Jarratt (1988). See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong> Dianthus<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_dianthus.asp).<br />

Diastema: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Dieffenbachia<br />

Laurence C. Hatch maintains a web page of the dumbcanes<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/dieffen.html).<br />

Diervilla<br />

The cultivars of the bush honeysuckles are discussed by Schneider (1930).<br />

Dracaena<br />

The Indian cultivars of the dracaenas are listed by Anonymous (1959d).<br />

Drosera: see carnivorous plants<br />

Echeveria<br />

Carruthers and Ginns (1973) list cultivars of Echeveria but provide no dates.<br />

Echinacea<br />

The cultivars of the coneflowers are discussed by Raynor (1998).<br />

Enkianthus<br />

The cultivars of Enkianthus spp. are discussed by Gelderen (1997).<br />

Epacris: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Epimedium<br />

The cultivars of the epimediums are listed by Barker (1996) and Laar (1981a).<br />

epiphytic cacti: see Cactaceae<br />

Episcia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Eremophila: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Erica<br />

A guide to naming heath cultivars is McClintock (1986). Bean (1970-1988), Chapple<br />

(1951), Johnson (1956), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Laar (1970a, 1977a), Letts (1966),<br />

Mikolajski (1997), Proudley and Proudley (1974), Underhill (1990) and Laar (1974) list many<br />

cultivars of heaths. Munson (1981, 1984) provides a comprehensive key to species and cultivars<br />

of Erica with full botanical descriptions in the 1981 thesis. Summer-blooming cultivars are<br />

discussed by Denkewitz (1990).<br />

Erigeron<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of the daisy fleabanes are discussed by Clausen


Tucker-14<br />

(1972b), Hensen (1966), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), and Oudshoorn (1975). Trehane (1989)<br />

also lists many cultivars of the daisy fleabanes.<br />

Eriostemon: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Erodium<br />

The cultivars of the heron's bills are listed by Addlyman and Clifton (1992), the British<br />

Pelargonium and Geranium Society (1970), and Clifton (1994).<br />

Eryngium<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the sea hollies are discussed by Grant (2000).<br />

Erythrina<br />

The species and cultivars of Erythrina are listed by McClintock (1982).<br />

Escallonia<br />

The cultivars of the escallonias are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Krüssmann (1984-<br />

1986), and Schneider and Laar (1970).<br />

Eucalyptus: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Eucodonia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Eucryphia<br />

The cultivars of Eucryphia are discussed by Wright (1983a) but with no introduction<br />

dates or background. Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1984-1986) also list some cultivars.<br />

Recent registrations are listed by the Australian <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority (1988).<br />

Euonymus<br />

The cultivars of Euonymus are discussed by Bean (1970-1988), Ilsink and Jong (1986),<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986), Laar (1979), Lancaster (1981), and Spellerberg (1997). An additional<br />

registration is recorded by Huttleston (1986).<br />

Euphorbia<br />

The most comprehensive discussion of the cultivars of the spurges is Turner (1995).<br />

Ecke (1976) lists cultivars of the poinsettia, Euphorbia pulcherrima Willd. ex Klotzsch.<br />

Additional registrations are recorded by Huttleston (1989). Trehane (1989) and Turner (1983)<br />

discuss the cultivars of the hardy spurges.<br />

Eustoma<br />

The cultivars of lisianthus, Eustoma grandiflorum (Raf.) Shinn., were evaluated by<br />

Harbaugh, Bell, and Liang (2000).<br />

Exochorda<br />

The cultivars of the pearlbushes are listed by Bos (1998).<br />

Fagus<br />

Wyman (1962a, 1964) lists the cultivars of the beeches but with few introduction dates<br />

and little background. Bean (1970-1988), Grootendorst (1975), Hoey Smith (1976, 1998), and<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986) also discuss the cultivars of the beeches. Spongberg (1988, 1989)<br />

records additional registrations.<br />

ferns<br />

Maatsch (1980) lists cultivars of ferns with descriptions, background in<strong>for</strong>mation, and<br />

English vernacular names. Jones (1987) and Mickel (1994) list many cultivars of ferns. The<br />

cultivars of Adiantum, maidenhair ferns, are listed in Goudey (1985). The cultivars of the<br />

staghorn ferns, Platycerium, are listed by Vail (1984). The cultivars of the royal ferns,<br />

Osmunda regalis L., are listed by Anderson (1971). Recent registrations of Blechnum are listed<br />

by the Australian <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority (1988).<br />

Festuca: see Poaceae, Cyperaceae, and Juncaceae<br />

Filipendula


Tucker-15<br />

The cultivars of the meadowsweets or dropworts are discussed by Müssel (1996).<br />

Forsythia<br />

The cultivars of the <strong>for</strong>sythias are published by Bean (1970-1988), Dieterich (1957),<br />

Hebb (1971), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Werken (1988), and Wyman (1961a, 1961b). Howe<br />

(1984) and Spongberg (1988) record additional registrations.<br />

Fraxinus<br />

The cultivars of the ashes are discussed by Bean (1970-1988), Bom (1982),<br />

Grootendorst (1966b), Krüssmann (1984-1986), McArdle and Santamour (1984), and<br />

Santamour and McArdle (1983c).<br />

Fritillaria<br />

Pratt (n.d.) provides a list of the species and cultivars of the fritillaries, but Clark and<br />

Grey-Wilson (2003) is the most comprehensive list of the crown imperials. Good colored<br />

illustrations are provided by Jefferson-Brown and Pratt (1997).<br />

Fuchsia<br />

Parker (1986) provides a guide <strong>for</strong> fuchsia cultivar identification. A comprehensive<br />

checklist of cultivars of fuchsias is Boullemier (1975, 1980, 1982, 1985). Bean (1970-1988)<br />

and Krüssmann (1984-1986) discuss some hardy cultivars. Bartlett (2000), Ewart (1982, 1987),<br />

and Saunders (1971-1973) describe and picture many of these cultivars. These should be used<br />

in conjunction with Goulding (1995), Hurka (1990), Manthey (1990), Nijhuis (1994), Proudley<br />

(1975), and Thorne (1959).<br />

Gaillardia<br />

The cultivars and per<strong>for</strong>mance of the gaillardias are listed by the Royal Horticultural<br />

Society (1930c).<br />

Galanthus<br />

The cultivars of the snowdrops are listed by Bowles (1956), Davis (1999), the Royal<br />

General Bulbgrowers' Association (1991), Schmid (1990), Trehane (1989), and Yeo (1975).<br />

Gazania<br />

The cultivars of Gazania are listed by Köhlein (1998f).<br />

Genista<br />

The cultivars of the brooms (Cytisus and Genista) are treated by Bean (1970-1988),<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Laar (1971).<br />

Gentiana<br />

Bartlett (1975) includes many cultivars of gentians in her book. Many cultivars are also<br />

listed by Köhlein (1998b) and Trehane (1989).<br />

Geranium<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of the hardy geraniums are discussed by<br />

Clausen (1974b). Yeo (1985) includes in<strong>for</strong>mation on many cultivars of the hardy geraniums in<br />

his comprehensive book. Clifton (1992, 1995), Fuchs (1992b), Hibberd (1994), Jelitto and<br />

Schacht (1990), Lis-Balchin (2002), and Trehane (1989), and Walsweer (1988) list many<br />

cultivars. Good colored illustrations are provided by Bath and Jones (1994). See, also, the web<br />

page on hardy geraniums (http://www.hardygeraniums.com/).<br />

Gesneriaceae<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Achimenes, the orchid pansies, are listed by the American Gesneria Society<br />

(1957), Arnold (1969), and Townsend (1984). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Aeschynanthus are listed by Dates<br />

(1990). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Columnea and allied genera (Bucinellina, Dalbergaria, Pentadenia, and<br />

Trichantha) are listed by Arnold (1963b, 1966) and Dates (1987). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Episcia and<br />

Alsobia, the carpet plants, are listed by the American Gesneria Society (1957) and Arnold<br />

(1963a, 1968, 1977), and Dates (1993). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Kohleria, the tree gloxinias, and


Tucker-16<br />

Smithiantha are listed by the American Gesneria Society (1957), the American Gloxinia Society<br />

(1962), Batcheller (1985), and Moore (1953). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Nematanthus are listed by Arnold<br />

(1978). The master variety lists <strong>for</strong> Saintpaulia, the African violets, are published by Boland<br />

(1983, 1984, 1985, 1986, 1987, 1988), Frank (1975), Rector (1963), and Tretter (1976), and<br />

should be supplemented with Kawakami (c. 1981), who includes English captions and a<br />

Japanese text with color photographs. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Sinningia are listed by Arnold (1975) and<br />

Dates (1988). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Streptocarpus, the Cape primroses, are listed by Arnold (1972,<br />

1979) and Brown (1973). Intergeneric hybrids in the tribe Gloxinieae (which includes<br />

Achimenes, Diastema, Eucodonia, Gloxinia, Heppiella, Koellikeria, Kohleria, Monopyle,<br />

Moussonia, Niphaea, Parakohleria, Smithiantha, and Solenophora) are listed by Dates (1986).<br />

Geum<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of Geum are discussed by Clausen (1975) and<br />

Mallett (1983). Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and Trehane (1989) also list many cultivars.<br />

Ginkgo<br />

The cultivars of ginkgo (G. biloba L.) are discussed by Bean (1970-1988); Bom (1982);<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986); Pulaczewski (2000); and Santamour, He, and McArdle (1983).<br />

Laurence C. Hatch maintains a web page on the cultivars of ginkgo<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/ginkgo.html).<br />

Gladiolus<br />

Pieters (1905) is the first list of cultivars of gladiolus that we have discovered. The<br />

cultivars of gladiolus are later listed by Hottes (1916), Olmsted et al. (1923), American<br />

Gladiolus Society (1931), Birch (1940), Genders (1961b), Pridham (1932), the Royal General<br />

Bulbgrowers' Association (1991), Sandhack (1927), and Trehane (1989). Many of these<br />

cultivars are incorporated into Fisher et al. (1975). Additions are published by Fisher (c. 1983).<br />

Gleditsia<br />

Bean (1970-1988), Bom (1982), Haserodt and Sydnor (1983), Krüssmann (1984-1986),<br />

Santamour and McArdle (1983b), and Wagenknecht (1961a) discuss the cultivars of the honey<br />

locust (G. triacanthos L.).<br />

Gloriosa<br />

Narain (1988), the Royal General Bulbgrowers' Association (1991), and Trehane (1989)<br />

list cultivars of the climbing lilies.<br />

Gloxinia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Grevillea<br />

The grevilleas are discussed by Larkman (1985). Recent registrations are listed by the<br />

Australian <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority (1988). See also the entry <strong>for</strong> Proteaceae.<br />

Hakea: see Australian (& South African) plants and Proteaceae<br />

Halesia<br />

The cultivars of the silver-bells are listed by Fontaine (1970b).<br />

Hamamelidaceae<br />

The cultivars of the Hamamelidaceae are discussed by Bärtels (1992b), Bean (1970-<br />

1988), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Sanders (1982), Weaver (1976a), and Wright (1982).<br />

Grootendorst (1965, 1980a) and Lancaster (1970) record the background and per<strong>for</strong>mance of<br />

witch hazel (Hamamelis spp.) cultivars. Van Trier (1998) lists the cultivars of Hamamelis<br />

×intermedia Rehd. Strand (1998) discusses the Asian witch hazels and their hybrids. Huttleston<br />

(1989) records an additional registration of Hamamelis.<br />

Hardenbergia: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Hebe


Tucker-17<br />

Chalk (1988) lists cultivars of Hebe and Parahebe. Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann<br />

(1984-1986) also discuss the cultivars of these two genera.<br />

Hedera<br />

The most comprehensive listing of cultivars of ivies is Heieck (1980). This should be<br />

supplemented with Fearnley-Whittingstall (1992), Hatch (1982), Hop (2001b), Key (1981,<br />

1999), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Lawrence and Schulze (1942), Lawrence (1956), Nannenga-<br />

Bremekamp (1970), Pierot (1974), Rose (1980), Schaepman (1975), and publications in the Ivy<br />

Journal. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of non-H. helix species are discussed by Heieck (1991). Laurence C. Hatch<br />

also maintains a web page on ivies (http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/hede1616.html).<br />

Hedychium<br />

The cultivars of the ginger lilies are discussed by Schilling (1982).<br />

Hedysarum<br />

The cultivars of the Hedysarum species are listed by Lemmens (1985).<br />

Helenium<br />

The cultivars of the sneezeweeds, Helenium, are discussed by Venema (1958) and zur<br />

Linden and zur Linden (1994). See, also, the web page on sneezeweeds<br />

(http://www.Helenium.net).<br />

Helianthemum<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of the rock roses are discussed by Clausen<br />

(1968) and the Royal Horticultural Society (1926d). Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and Trehane<br />

(1989) also list cultivars.<br />

Helianthus<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of the sunflowers are discussed by Clausen<br />

(1974c). Erhardt (1994b) and Trehane (1989) also list cultivars.<br />

Helichrysum: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Heliconia<br />

The cultivars of Heliconia are discussed by Berry and Kress (1991).<br />

Heliopsis<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of Heliopsis are discussed by Clausen (1974a)<br />

and Hensen (1983b). Erhardt (1992b), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), and Trehane (1989) also list<br />

cultivars.<br />

Heliotropium<br />

The cultivars of the cherry pie plant, H. arborescens L., are discussed by Cooke (1995).<br />

Helleborus<br />

The cultivars of the hellebores are discussed and illustrated in black and white drawings<br />

by Ahlburg (1993) and appended to the rear of Mathew (1989b), but the most comprehensive<br />

descriptions, with color photographs, seem to be Rice and Strangman (1993). Double<br />

hellebores are discussed by Schmiemann (1994). New cultivars are discussed by Ahlburg<br />

(1991).<br />

Hemerocallis<br />

The daylilies are first listed by Stout (1934) and Norton et al. (1949), later in<br />

publications of the American Hemerocallis Society (1957, c. 1973, c. 1984, 1989, 1994) and<br />

Baxter (1999). The species and old cultivars are discussed by Kitchingham (1985). Jelitto and<br />

Schacht (1990) and Trehane (1989) also list cultivars. Additional in<strong>for</strong>mation is provided by<br />

Grenfell (1998), Grosvenor (1999), Hill and Hill (1991), Munson (1989), Thomsen-Stork (1995,<br />

1996), and Webber (1988). These should be used in conjunction with Darrow and Meyer<br />

(1968), Erhardt (1992a), and Stout (1986). Petit and Peat (2000) provide excellent colored<br />

illustrations of the modern cultivars.


Tucker-18<br />

Heppiella: see Gesneriaceae<br />

herbs<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of fragrant and flavorful herbs are discussed by Tucker and DeBaggio (2000).<br />

Heuchera<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of the coralbells are discussed by Clausen (1970) and<br />

Hansen and Sieber (1970). Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and Trehane (1989) also list cultivars.<br />

Hibiscus<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986) discusses the cultivars of Hibiscus. The American Hibiscus<br />

Society (1984, 1987) and Chin (1986) are checklists and a pictured catalogs of cultivars of<br />

Chinese hibiscus (H. rosa-sinensis L.). Beers and Howie (1985, 1990), Harvey (1988), and<br />

Howie (1980) are checklists of mostly Australian cultivars of Chinese hibiscus. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the<br />

swamp rose-mallow, H. moscheutos L., are discussed by Hawke (1994a). The Australian<br />

Hibiscus Society Inc. is the appointed International <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority <strong>for</strong> H. rosasinensis<br />

and maintains a Web page of cultivars (http://www.australianhibiscus.com/). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s<br />

of rose-of-Sharon (H. syriacus L.) are published by Bean (1970-1988), Grootendorst (1968b),<br />

Huttleston (1986, 1988, 1990, 1991), Laar (1997a), Segall (1995), and Wyman (1958). Beth<br />

Matney also maintains a Web site (http://members.tripod.com/~h_syriacus/cultivar_list.htm) on<br />

cultivars of H. syriacus. Kelsey and Dayton (1942) provide a list of cultivars <strong>for</strong> both A. rosasinensis<br />

and A. syriacus but without introduction dates and background.<br />

Hippeastrum: see Amaryllidaceae<br />

Hippophae<br />

The cultivars of the the sea buckthorns are discussed by Albrecht (1991).<br />

Halimium: see Cistus<br />

Hippeastrum<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the garden amaryllis are discussed by Read (2000).<br />

Hoheria<br />

The cultivars of the lacebarks are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Krüssmann (1984-1986),<br />

and Wright (1983a).<br />

Hosta<br />

The most comprehensive discussion of the hostas is Schmid (1991). The cultivars of the<br />

hostas are also listed in the comprehensive works by Hensen (1963a, 1963b, 1983a,1985) with<br />

comments by Grenfell (1986). Dwarf hostas are listed by Köhlein (1995). These should be<br />

supplemented with Aden (1990), Fisher (1979), Grenfell (1990), Jelitto and Schacht (1990),<br />

Laar (1967), and Trehane (1989). Good colored illustrations are provided by Grenfell (1996).<br />

See, also, the web pages on hostas (http://www.hostalibrary.org). Registrations of hostas<br />

through 1998 are given in the “Silver Book” (American Hosta Society 1993, 2000). Additional<br />

registrations were published in 1999-2001 (Stevenson 1999, 2000; Wilkins 2001). These<br />

should be used with the index to hostas as they appeared in The American Hosta Society’s<br />

Bulletin/Journal volumes 1-21 (American Hosta Society 1991).<br />

houseplants<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of houseplants are pictured and briefly discussed by Copok (1998), Graf<br />

(1978, 1986a, 1986b) and <strong>Phillips</strong> and Rix (1997).<br />

Humulus<br />

Snoeijer (2002) lists 475 cultivars of hops.<br />

Hyacinthus<br />

The cultivars of hyacinths are documented by the Royal General Bulbgrowers'<br />

Association (1991), but further in<strong>for</strong>mation is provided by Darlington, Hair, and Hurcombe<br />

(1951). Trehane (1989) also lists the cultivars of hyacinths.


Tucker-19<br />

Hydrangea<br />

The most comprehensive discussions of the cultivars of the hydrangeas are Lawson-Hall<br />

and Rothera (1995) and Mallet, Mallet, and van Trier (1992). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the hydrangeas are<br />

also covered in Bean (1970-1988), Grootendorst (1973b), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Haworth-<br />

Booth (1984), and van Trier (1995). Gelderen (2000) and Ilsink (1988) cover the cultivars of H.<br />

paniculata Sieb., while Wilson (1923) and Reed (2002) cover the cultivars of H. macrophylla<br />

(Thunb.) Ser. Flat-topped cultivars are discussed by Bärtels (1992c). A preliminary Hydrangea<br />

checklist is Bertrand (2001). Good colored illustrations are provided by Church (1999).<br />

Hypericum<br />

The cultivars of the St. John's worts are listed by Bean (1970-1988) Krüssmann (1984-<br />

1986), and Schneider (1965b, 1966a).<br />

Hypocalymma: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Ilex<br />

In 1953 the Holly Society of America published a preliminary checklist (Wister, 1953b).<br />

This checklist is being revised in accordance with the International Code of Nomenclature <strong>for</strong><br />

Cultivated <strong>Plants</strong>. First in this series is Eisenbeiss and Dudley (1973) <strong>for</strong> I. opaca Aiton, the<br />

American holly. Eisenbeiss and Dudley (1983) is an Ilex cultivar registration list 1958-1983.<br />

Andrews (1983, 1984, 1986) and Gelderen (1988) discuss the cultivars of I. Xaltaclerensis<br />

Dallim. Gelderen (1988a) and Paul (1863) list the varieties of I. aquifolium L. Buchtmann<br />

(1999, 2002), Dudley and Eisenbeiss (1992), Gelderen (1997a), and Wyman (1960) are<br />

checklists <strong>for</strong> I. crenata Thunb. Dirr (1988) and Eggerss and Hasselkus (1992) cover the<br />

cultivars of the deciduous hollies. Bean (1970-1988), Gelderen (1971), and Krüssmann (1984-<br />

1986) also list the cultivars of the hollies. Probably the most comprehensive discussion of the<br />

cultivars of the hollies is Galle (1997). These should be used in conjunction with Hansell,<br />

Dudley, and Eisenbeiss (1970). New cultivars of hollies are published in the Holly Society<br />

Journal.<br />

Impatiens<br />

The cultivars of the New Guinea impatiens are discussed by Agnew and Lang (1992),<br />

Banner and Klopmeyer (1995), Eichin and Deiser (1988) and Winters (1973).<br />

Indigofera<br />

The cultivars of the indigos are listed by Lemmens (1985).<br />

Iris<br />

Grosvenor (1997), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Stebbings (1997), and Trehane (1989) list<br />

many cultivars of the hardy iris but with scant in<strong>for</strong>mation. In contrast, the listings of cultivars<br />

of bearded irises published by Peckham (1929, 1940), Douglas (1949), Keppel (1996, 1997,<br />

1998, 1999, 2000, 2001, 2002, 2003), Knowlton (1959), Nelson (1971), and Nelson and Keppel<br />

(1981, 1991, 1992a, 1992b, 1993, 1994, 1995) are rich with in<strong>for</strong>mation. The Royal<br />

Horticultural Society (1928, 1930b) and Sand (1921, 1925) provide additional descriptions of<br />

many pre-1930 bearded irises. Stein-Zeppelin (1990) is a list of new tall-bearded irises.<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the reblooming iris are listed by Brookins (1991a) and Roberts (1998).<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the dwarf irises are listed by the Dwarf Iris Society (1975, 1988) and Wright<br />

(1927). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Japanese iris (I. kaempferi Sieb. ex Lem.) are published by Brookins<br />

(1992) and the Society <strong>for</strong> Japanese Irises (1988), supplemented by McEwen (1990). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s<br />

of the Siberian irises (I. sanguinea Hornem. and I. sibirica L.) are listed by Brookins (1989,<br />

1991b, 1997), Köhlein (1990b), Rücker (1997b), Warburton (1986). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the arils are<br />

listed by the Aril Society (1976, 1978, 1980, 1982) and Gordon (1996). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the Pacific<br />

Coast irises are illustrated by Wise (1995). The Louisiana irises are listed by Fritchie (1982)<br />

and Schuster (1990), and some color photographs, dates, and background are given by Caillet


Tucker-20<br />

and Metzweiller (1988) and Caillet et al. (2000). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the medians are listed by the<br />

Median Iris Society (1984, 1992). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the spurias are listed by Foreman (1985), Simon<br />

(1991), and Wickenkamp, Seifert, and Shepard (1995). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the bulbous irises are<br />

discussed by Hoog (1980) and the Royal General Bulbgrowers' Association (1991).<br />

Itea<br />

Lindstrom and Pelto (2003) have applied RAPD-PCR to the identification of cultivars of<br />

Virginia sweetspire, I. virginica L.<br />

Ixora<br />

Anonymous (1958c) is a checklist of the cultivars of the ixoras.<br />

Jasminum<br />

The cultivars of the jasmines are discussed by Bean (1970-1988), Green (1965), and<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986). An additional cultivar is listed by Huttleston (1986).<br />

Jovibara: see Sempervivum<br />

Juniperus: see conifers<br />

Kalmia<br />

The cultivars of the mountain laurels are published in Jaynes (1975, 1983, 1988, 1997),<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Wieting (1994). Additional cultivars are published in<br />

HortScience (Jaynes, 1989) and Heger and Hübbers (1998).<br />

Kennedia: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Kniphofia<br />

The cultivars of the torch lilies are discussed by Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Taylor<br />

(1985a, b), and Trehane (1989).<br />

Koellikeria: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Kohleria: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Kunzia: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Lagerstroemia<br />

The cultivars of crape myrtles are listed by Egolf and Andrick (1978), Johnson et al.<br />

(2000), Knox (1995), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Norris (1984).<br />

Lamium<br />

The cultivars of the deadnettles are illustrated and discussed by Mattern (1994).<br />

Lantana<br />

The cultivars of the lantanas are listed by Anonymous (1958d), Howard (1969), and<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986). An additional cultivar is recorded by Spongberg (1988). Laurence C.<br />

Hatch maintains a web page on the lantanas<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/lantana.html).<br />

Lathyrus<br />

Kelsey and Dayton (1942), Köhlein (1998e), Morse (1916), Royal Horticultural Society<br />

(1926b), and Unwin (1926) are checklists of sweet peas, Lathyrus odoratus L. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the<br />

hardy perennial species are listed by Köhlein (1998e) and Trehane (1989).<br />

Laurus<br />

The <strong>for</strong>ms of the bay laurel, L. nobilis L., are discussed by Voloshin (1956).<br />

Lavandula<br />

The cultivars of lavender (L. angustifolia Mill.) and lavandin (L. xintermedia Emeric ex<br />

Loisel.) are discussed by Couttolenc (n.d.), Hensen (1974), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Kourik<br />

(1998), McLeod (2000), McNaughton (1994, 2000), and Tucker and Hensen (1985).<br />

Lechenaultia: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Leptospermum<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986) and Metcalf (1963) are checklists of Leptospermum cultivars


Tucker-21<br />

(mostly L. scoparium J. R. Forst & G. Forst). Recent registrations are listed by the Australian<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority (1988).<br />

Lespedeza<br />

The cultivars of the bush clovers are listed by Lemmens (1985). An additional cultivar<br />

is listed by Huttleston (1991).<br />

Leucadendron see Proteaceae<br />

Leucospermum see Proteaceae<br />

Leucanthemum<br />

The cultivars of the shasta daisies are listed by Furthmair (1996).<br />

Leucothoë<br />

The cultivars of L. fontanesiana (Steud.) Sleum., the drooping leucothoe, are discussed<br />

by Bean (1970-1988), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Green (1963).<br />

Lewisia<br />

The cultivars of the lewisias are discussed by Mathew (1989a).<br />

Liatris<br />

The per<strong>for</strong>mance of the cultivars of the blazine stars are discussed by Hawke (1996).<br />

Ligularia<br />

The cultivars of Ligularia are discussed by Dress (1962).<br />

Lilium<br />

<strong>Check</strong>lists of lilies are published by Royal Horticultural Society (1982a) with<br />

supplements (1982b, 1984a, 1985a, 1986a, 1987a, 1988a, 1989a, 1990b, 1991a, 1992b, 1993a,<br />

1994a, 1995f, 1996b, 1997c, 1998f, 1999d, 2000b, 2001b, 2002b). The North American Lily<br />

Society also has their checklists of lily hybrids (Fisher, 1978; Collings, 1986) but give scant<br />

in<strong>for</strong>mation on cultivars pre-1940. Scientific evaluation of lily cultivars are in the symposium<br />

edited by Lee and Roh (1996). The lily hybrids of Carl Feldmaier are listed by Ewald (1996).<br />

Some colored illustrations of lily cultivars are in Bird (1991). Additional listings are carried by<br />

McRae (2001) and Trehane (1989). Some good colored illustrations are provided by Jefferson-<br />

Brown and Howland (2000) and Mikolajski (1998). See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong> Lilium<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_lilium.asp).<br />

Liquidambar<br />

The cultivars of the the sweetgums (L. <strong>for</strong>mosana Hance and L. styraciflua L.) are<br />

discussed by Bom (1982), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Santamour and McArdle (1984).<br />

Liriodendron<br />

The cultivars of the tuliptree (L. tulipifera L.) are discussed by Andrews (1992), Bean<br />

(1970-1988), Krüssmann (1984-1986) and Santamour and McArdle (1984).<br />

Liriope: see Ophiopogon-Liriope<br />

Lithops<br />

The cultivars of the living stones are listed in Hammer (1999).<br />

Lobelia<br />

The tetraploid cultivars of the Lobelia siphilitica-L. cardinalis complex are listed by<br />

Bowden (1983).<br />

Lonicera<br />

The cultivars of the honeysuckles are discussed by Bean (1970-1988), Bradshaw (1996),<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986), Laar (1988), Schneider (1971), Wright (1983b), and Yeo (1964).<br />

Lophostemon: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Lupinus<br />

The cultivars and per<strong>for</strong>mance of the lupines are discussed by the Royal Horticultural<br />

Society (1931a).


Tucker-22<br />

Lythrum<br />

The cultivars of Lythrum are discussed by Harp (1975).<br />

Magnolia<br />

Tresender (1978) lists many cultivars of magnolias, and while dates and hybridizers are<br />

generally absent, the descriptions are good. Gardiner (1989) thoroughly discusses magnolia<br />

hybrids with photographs. Additional cultivars are listed in Bean (1970-1988), De Jaeck<br />

(1995), Hunt (1998), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Royal Horticultural Society (1990e, 1992h,<br />

1993e, 1994f, 1997d, 1998h, 2000e), and Vrugtman (1972). Comprehensive lits of magnolia<br />

cultivars are provided by Fogg and McDaniel (1975, 1994) and Magolia Society (1994).<br />

Hybrids of M. quinquepeta (Buc’hoz) Dandy (M. liliiflora Desr.) are listed by Neudecker<br />

(1990), while hybrids of M. stellata (Siebold & Zucc.) Maxim. are listed by Neudecker (1988).<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of M. stellata are listed by Robinson (2003). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of M. ×soulangiana Soul.-Bod.<br />

are discussed by Neudecker (1989). New cultivars of magnolias are published in Magnolia<br />

Journal and also discussed on the web site <strong>for</strong> the Magnolia Society<br />

(http://www.magnoliasociety.org).<br />

Mahonia<br />

The cultivars of the grape hollies (and ×Mahoberberis) are listed by Bean (1970-1988),<br />

Brickell (1979), Hoffman (2000a), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Laar (1975).<br />

Malus<br />

Bom (1982), den Boer (1959), Fiala (1994), Grootendorst (1964a), Lombarts (1984),<br />

Meyer (1991), Nichols (1984), Preston (1944), Swan (1995), Van Eseltine (1933, 1934), and<br />

Wyman (1943, 1955) include descriptions and introductions of crabapples (the 1943 edition of<br />

Wyman has some in<strong>for</strong>mation dropped from the 1955 edition, including discarded cultivars and<br />

citations to a bibliography). Jefferson (1970) clarifies the misnaming of crabapple cultivars and<br />

provides an extensive bibliography. Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1984-1986) also list<br />

the cultivars of the ornamental crabapples. Lately, crabapple registrations have been carried by<br />

the Arnold Arboretum and published in HortScience (Spongberg, 1988, 1989).<br />

Melaleuca: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Melia<br />

The cultivars of the Persian lilac or Chinaberry (Melia azedarach L.) are listed by<br />

Mabberley (1984).<br />

Monarda<br />

The beebalms are discussed by Hawke (1998), Hoffman (1999a), Matern (1993), and<br />

Oudolf (1993).<br />

Monopyle: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Morus<br />

The cultivars of the mulberries are listed by Bolscher and Wurff (1998).<br />

Moussonia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Myoporum: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Myosotis<br />

The seed lines of the <strong>for</strong>get-me-nots are discussed by Winterrowd (2001).<br />

Myrtus<br />

The <strong>for</strong>ms of the myrtle, Myrtus communis L., are discussed by Sennen and Teodoro<br />

(1929).<br />

Nandina and Pogonatherum<br />

The landscape values of cultivars of heavenly bamboo, N. domestica Thunb., are<br />

discussed by Raulston (1984). Rücker (1998) discusses the cultivars of both Nandina and the


Tucker-23<br />

related genus Pogonatherum.<br />

Narcissus<br />

For many years the Royal Horticultural Society printed classified lists of daffodils<br />

(1908d, 1910, 1931b, 1938, 1948, 1955, 1958, 1961, 1965, 1969c, 1975, 1989g), but many of<br />

these are not cumulative. The most comprehensive list of cultivars of daffodils is by the Royal<br />

Horticultural Society (1998a), which updates the 1969 classified list and the classified list and<br />

international register of 1975 with supplements (1989g, 1990d, 1991c, 1992e, 1993d, 1994d,<br />

1995c, 1998f, 1999d, 2000c, 2001c, 2002c). A checklist of daffodils has been provided as a<br />

continually updated computer printout by Throckmorton (n.d.), but very old cultivars are listed<br />

without a date. The history of cultivar registration of daffodils by the Royal Horticultural<br />

Society is documented by Donald (1986). Trehane (1989) also lists cultivars of daffodils.<br />

Abridged lists of exhibition daffodils are published by the American Daffodil Society (1977,<br />

1980, 1985, 1989, 1994). These should be used in conjunction with American Daffodil Society<br />

(1997), Bourne (1903), Bowles (1934), Jefferson-Brown (1991), Lee (1966), Tompsett (1982),<br />

and the "Narcissus editions" of Herbertia (vol. 13, 1946) and Plant Life/Herbertia (vol. 9, no.<br />

1, 1953). Hybrids of N. cyclamineus DC. are discussed by Schmid (1997). Pink daffodils are<br />

discussed by Erhardt (1994a). See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong> Narcissus<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registerpages/intro.asp).<br />

Nematanthus: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Nepenthes: see carnivorous plants<br />

Nepeta<br />

The cultivars of the catmints are listed by Hoffman (2001) and Kress (1997).<br />

Nerine: see Amaryllidaceae<br />

Nerium<br />

The cultivars of the oleanders are discussed by Anonymous (1958a, 1991) and Pagen<br />

(1987). The International Oleander Society also maintains a web page<br />

(http://www.oleander.org/)<br />

Nigella<br />

The cultivars of Nigella are listed by Sorvig (1983), Herrmann (1998) lists the culitvars<br />

of N. damascena.<br />

Niphaea: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Nymphaeaceae<br />

The most comprehensive list of waterlily cultivars is Swindells (1989b). The cultivars<br />

of waterlilies are also treated in Anonymous (1960); Conard (1905); Henkel, Rehnelt, and<br />

Dittmann (1907); Kelsey and Dayton (1942); Perry (1989); Schuster (1992, 1997); Swindells<br />

(1983); and Trehane (1989). The International Waterlily & Water Gardening Society has<br />

published a provisional checklist of cultivars of Nymphaea (Knotts and Sacher 2000).<br />

Ocimum<br />

The cultivars of the basils are discussed by Darrah (1980), DeBaggio and Belsinger<br />

(1996).<br />

Ophiopogon-Liriope<br />

The cultivars of Ophiopogon and Liriope, the “liriopogons,” are discussed by Fantz<br />

(1995), Hume (1961), and Mcharo (2003)..<br />

Orchidaceae<br />

A guide to orchid hybrid (grex) registration is published by Hunt (1986, 1995). While<br />

lists have been previously published by Sanders, Sanders (1946) is the last cumulative checklist<br />

of orchid hybrids; a list of intergeneric taxa is listed in Table II. Later, non-cumulative<br />

supplements are published (Sanders and Wre<strong>for</strong>d, 1961; Royal Horticultural Society, 1972,


Tucker-24<br />

1980, 1981, 1985c, 1986c, 1991e). The entire orchid In<strong>for</strong>mation System is also available on<br />

compact disc from RHS. Holst (1999) discusses the cultivars of Catesetum. Japan Orchid<br />

Growers Assocation (n.d.) has excellent color photographs of cultivars derived from Cattleya.<br />

The slipper orchids (Cypripedium, Paphiopedilum, etc.) are discussed by Cash (1991). Groves<br />

(1995), Motes (1997), and Poliakoff (1987) uniquely list Vanda cultivars with the percentage of<br />

genetic background of each ancestral species. Gilmour, Greatwood, and Hunt (1976) give the<br />

names of intergeneric hybrids. Some colored photographs or orchid cultivars are given in<br />

Mikolajski (1999a). See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong> orchid grex names<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_orchids.asp).<br />

Origanum<br />

The cultivars of Origanum, the marjorams, are discussed by Tucker and Rollins (1989).<br />

Trehane (1989) and White (1998) list some additional cultivars.<br />

Osmanthus<br />

The cultivars of the devilweeds are discussed by Gelderen (1999). The evergreen<br />

cultivars are discussed by Seehawer (2000).<br />

Osmunda: see ferns<br />

Ostrya: see Carpinus<br />

Paeonia<br />

The cultivars of the peonies are first listed by Coit (1907), later by Beal (1920) and<br />

Kelsey and Dayton (1942), and most recently by Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and Trehane (1989).<br />

The most comprehensive listing is by Kessenich (1976). Page 91997) provides good colored<br />

illustrations. These checklists should be supplemented with Fearnley-Whittingstall (1999),<br />

Harding (1917), Klehm (1995), Rogers (1995), and Wister (1962) <strong>for</strong> fuller descriptions and a<br />

comprehensive bibliography. Haworth-Booth (1963), Haw (2001), and Krüssmann (1984-<br />

1986) also supply further in<strong>for</strong>mation on the tree peonies, P. suffruticosa Andrews. American<br />

peony hybrids are listed by Kessenich (1990). The selections of P. suffruticosa subsp. rockii S.<br />

G. Haw & L. A. Laucrier are listed by Rieck (1998). The intersectional hybrids of Itoh are<br />

discussed by Good (1996a). Daphnis hybrids of P. lutea Delav. ex Franch. are listed by Good<br />

(1996b, 1997), while the Saunders hybrids are listed by Hertle (1997). Hybrids of P. tenuifolia<br />

L. are listed by Rieck (1994), while hybrids of P. peregrina Mill. are listed by Rieck (1995).<br />

Hybrids of P. officinalis L., P. peregrina, and P. lactiflora Pall. are listed by Ehrardt (1988b).<br />

Later introductions have been published in the American Peony Society Bulletin. Additional<br />

cultivars are listed by Kortmann (1998).<br />

Pandorea: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Papaver<br />

The primary reference on poppy cultivars is Grey-Wilson (1993). The cultivars of the<br />

oriental (P. orientale L.), Iceland (P. nudicaule L.), and other poppies are also listed by Kelsey<br />

and Dayton (1942). Hybrids of the oriental poppies are discussed by Rothmund (1996).<br />

Parakohleria: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Parthenocissus<br />

The cultivars of Boston ivy, P. tricuspidata (Sieb. & Zucc.) Planch, are listed by Laar<br />

(1981b, 1992).<br />

Passiflora<br />

The cultivar of Passiflora, the passion flowers, are thoroughly discussed by<br />

Vanderplank (1991, 1996, 1998, 2000). Additional cultivars are discussed by Gottschalk<br />

(1991).<br />

Pelargonium<br />

The most readily available guides to geranium cultivars are Buczaki (1998); Krauss


Tucker-25<br />

(1955); Miller (1996); Schulz (1965); Stockton, Stockton and Mason (1996); and Wilson<br />

(1965). Bagust (1988) lists the cultivars of the dwarf geraniums. Moore (1955a, 1955b)<br />

provides background in<strong>for</strong>mation on many species and some cultivars. The scenteds are<br />

discussed by Abbott (1994) and Becker and Brawner (1996). The Australian Geranium Society<br />

(1978, 1985) has published the fist two sections of a comprehensive Pelargonium checklist,<br />

updating Spalding (c. 1975). Clif<strong>for</strong>d (1970) and Lis-Balchin (2002) are also useful.<br />

Penstemon<br />

Lindgren (1993) has provided a guide to registration of Penstemon cultivars. The most<br />

comprehensive guide to the genus is Lindgren and Davenport (1992). The American<br />

Penstemon Society (McWilliam, 1973, 1977) also lists registered cultivars. Good colored<br />

illusrations are provided by Way and James (1998).<br />

Pentadenia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

perennials, herbaceous<br />

A guide to naming cultivars of perennials is provided by Simon and Simon (1995).<br />

Grunert (1982); Jelitto and Schacht (1990); Krüssmann, Siebler, and Tangermann (1970);<br />

<strong>Phillips</strong> and Rix (1991); Thomas (1990); and Wehrhahn (1931) rank high among the available<br />

reference works on hardy herbaceous plants because of the richness of in<strong>for</strong>mation. The<br />

perennials registered by the International Registration Authority <strong>for</strong> Hardy Perennial <strong>Plants</strong> are<br />

listed by Hertle (2001) and Sieber (1990a, 1990b, 1996, 1997, 1998). The cultivars of<br />

perennials, based primarily upon British catalogs, are listed by Philip (1992); perennial cultivars<br />

based upon northern European sources are listed by Laar and Fortgens (1990) and Laar et al.<br />

(1995). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of perennials based upon American catalogs are listed by Isaacson (1996).<br />

Trehane (1989), emphasizing the cultivars available in the United Kingdom and Northern<br />

Europe, provides many dates and names of introducers. Though these latter three publications<br />

are excellent, they legitimize some incorrect synonyms by uncritically accepting catalog<br />

listings. Some additional illustrations are supplied in Armitage (2000), Craigmyle (2002), and<br />

Gilsenan (1994). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of daisies are listed by Sutton (2001).<br />

Pericallis (Senecio, Cineraria)<br />

The cultivars of the garden cineraria, P. ×hybrida B. Nordenstam, are discussed by<br />

Klemme (1969).<br />

Pernettya<br />

The cultivars of Pernettya are listed by Laar (1969) and Vogel (1969).<br />

Petunia<br />

Petunia cultivars are listed by Maatsch and Nolting (1968, 1971b), Nolting and Zimmer<br />

(1975b, 1980b, 1984, 1987), and Zimmer and Noack (1998); the earliest cultivar in these is<br />

dated 1947.<br />

Philadelphus<br />

The mockorange cultivars are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Bugala (1970), Dolatowski<br />

(1986), Hoffman (1996, 1999b), Hu (1954-1956), Janaki Ammal (1951), Kapranova and Lukina<br />

(1972), Krüssmann (1958c, 1984-1986), Sampson (1965), Schneider (1934), Wright (1980), and<br />

Wyman (1965). Mockorange cultivars are also published by Huttleston (1988).<br />

Phlomis<br />

The few cultivars of the Phlomis spp. are listed by Taylor (1998).<br />

Phlox<br />

Probably the most comprehensive list of phlox culivars is Trehane (1989), but very few<br />

dates are provided. Fuchs (1994a, b, c), Hawke (1999), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Kelsey and<br />

Dayton (1942), Kharchenko (1975), Kummert (1992) and Symons-Jeune (1953) also list phlox<br />

cultivars.


Tucker-26<br />

Phormium<br />

The cultivars of New Zealand flax are discussed by Cheek (1979) but more thoroughly<br />

by Heenan (1991). New cultivars are listed by Hornback (1994).<br />

Phygelius<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Phygelius are discussed by Coombes (1988). Trehane (1989) also lists<br />

cultivars.<br />

Phyllodoce<br />

The cultivars of mountain heather, Phyllodoce spp., are discussed by Dekker (1988).<br />

Physocarpus<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of ninebarks are listed by Bärtels (1995).<br />

Picea: see conifers<br />

Pieris<br />

The cultivars of the Japanese andromedas are discussed by Bärtels (1988a), Bean (1970-<br />

1988), Bond (1982), Bond and Lancaster (1996), Ecker (2002), Gelderen (1979), Ingram<br />

(1963), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Laros (1997), and Wagenknecht (1961b). Spongberg (1988,<br />

1990) records additional registrations.<br />

Pimelea: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Pinus: see conifers<br />

Plagianthus<br />

The cultivars of Plagianthus are listed by Wright (1983a).<br />

plant patents<br />

The U.S. plant patents and their common names have been assembled by the American<br />

Association of Nurserymen (1957, 1958, 1959, 1960, 1961, 1962, 1963, 1967, 1969, 1974,<br />

1981) <strong>for</strong> plant patents 1-4359. These have been published in one directory (American<br />

Association of Nurserymen, 1990) with patents 1-7088. Patents 1-477 are also listed in Kelsey<br />

and Dayton (1942). Further in<strong>for</strong>mation on plant patents is provided on the Web page <strong>for</strong> the<br />

U.S. Patent and Trademark Office<br />

(http://www.uspto.gov/web/offices/pac/doc/general/plant.htm).<br />

A review of the U.K. system of Plant Breeders' Rights (PBR) is provided by Goodwin<br />

(1986). The patenting of plants under the European Patent Convention (EPC) and The<br />

International Union of the Protection of New Varieties of <strong>Plants</strong> (UPOV) has been reviewed by<br />

Byrne (1986), Mast (1986), and Schneider (1986b).<br />

Platanus<br />

The cultivars of the planetrees are discussed by Santamour and McArdle (1986).<br />

Platycerium: see ferns<br />

Plectranthus: see Coleus-Solenostemon-Plectranthus<br />

Plumeria<br />

The checklist of the Plumeria Society of America (1988) should be supplemented with<br />

the color photographs of Chinn and Criley (1982), Eggenberger and Eggenberger (1988), and<br />

Thornton and Thornton (1985). Another checklist of cultivars is Anonymous (1958b).<br />

Poaceae, Cyperaceae, and Juncaceae<br />

The closest to checklists <strong>for</strong> the ornamental grasses, sedges and rushes are Darke (1990),<br />

Greenlee (2000), Hensen and Groendijk-Wilders (1986b), and Trehane (1989). These should be<br />

supplemented with Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Loewer (1988), Meyer (1975), Grounds (1979),<br />

Ottesen (1989), and Reinhardt et al. (1989). Bell 2000), Hawke (1992), Lawson (1968),<br />

Starosta (1998) list cultivars of bamboos. Müssel (1998a) lists the cultivars of the sheep’s<br />

fescue, Festuca ovina L., and relatives. Grounds (2002) discusses the cultivars of the eulalia<br />

grasses, Miscanthus spp.


Tucker-27<br />

Pogonatherum: see Nandina<br />

Polemonium<br />

The cultivars of Polemonium are listed by Allison (1998).<br />

Populus<br />

<strong>Check</strong>lists of poplar cultivars are Broekhuizen (1977); Houtzagers (1938, 1947);<br />

International Poplar Commission (1971, 1990); Koster (1972); and Roller, Thibault, and Hidahl<br />

(1972). Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1984-1986) provide additional in<strong>for</strong>mation.<br />

Potentilla<br />

Hachmann et al. (1986a), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Schmalscheidt (1984), and<br />

Trehane (1989) list the cultivars of Potentilla. The cultivars of the shrubby potentillas are<br />

discussed by Bachtell and Hasselkus (1982), Bean (1970-1988), Brearley (1987), Krüssmann<br />

(1984-1986), and Rhodes (1954). The cultivars of P. fruticosa L. are listed by Bärtels (1992d,<br />

1998b); Bowden (1957); Davidson (1995); Davidson, Enns, and Gobin (1994); Davidson,<br />

Gobin, and Enns (1998); Davidson and Lenz (1989a, b); Kolster and Kromhout (2000); Laar<br />

(1982); Schneider (1967); and Wyman (1968). An additional registration is discussed by<br />

Huttleston (1990).<br />

Primula<br />

The closest to a checklist <strong>for</strong> cultivars of Primula is Trehane (1989). Baker and Ward<br />

(1995), Blasdale (1948), Genders (1962a, 1963b), Haysom (1957), Hecker (1971), Hyatt (1989,<br />

1992), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Lyall (1959), Puttock (1957), Shaw (1991), Swindells<br />

(1989a), Ward (197), and Wemyss-Cooke (n.d.) also list many cultivars. A good<br />

comprehensive, illustrated guide to the cultivars of the auriculas is Robinson (2000).<br />

Prostanthera<br />

The few cultivars of the mint shrubs are briefly mentioned by Althofer (1978).<br />

Protea see Proteaceae<br />

Proteaceae<br />

Matthews (1983, 1993) and Vogts (1982) provide descriptions and excellent colored<br />

illustrations of cultivars of genera of the Proteaceae: Banksia, Grevillea, Hakea, Leucadendron,<br />

Leucospermum, Protea, Serruria, and Telopea. A guide to cultivar registration <strong>for</strong> Proteaceae<br />

is presented by Brits (1988a, c), while a "sample list" of Proteaceae cultivars is presented by<br />

Brits (1988b). Sadie (1994, 1995, 1997, 1998) lists registered names of Protea.<br />

Prunus<br />

Chadbund (1972) is recommended <strong>for</strong> cultivars of many flowering cherries. The<br />

Oriental flowering cherries are listed by Russell (1934). The cultivars of Japanese flowering<br />

cherry, P. serrulata Lindl., are discussed by Kuitert and Peterse (1999). Only the Sato-zakura<br />

group of the Japanese flowering cherries has been published as a separate checklist (Jefferson<br />

and Wain, 1984). The bibliography of this checklist, however, gives invaluable references on<br />

other ornamental Prunus. The purpleaf plums are discussed by Jacobson (1990, 1992). The<br />

cultivars of the cherry laurels (P. laurocerasus L.) are discussed by Kraan (1999). The cultivars<br />

of Japanese flowering apricot, Prunus mume Siebold and Zucc., are listed by Chen ((1999).<br />

These should be supplemented with Bom (1982), Grootendorst (1964b), Ingram (1948), Laar<br />

(1970b), Miyoshi (1916), Ohwi and Ohta (1973), and Wilson (1916). Other ornamental Prunus<br />

are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Huttleston (1986, 1990), and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Pterostyrax<br />

The cultivars of the epaulette trees are listed by Fontaine (1970b).<br />

Pulmonaria<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of the lungworts are reviewed by Hawke (2001b), Mathew (1982), Jelitto and<br />

Schacht (1990), Pape (1993), and Trehane (1989) but generally without introduction dates or


Tucker-28<br />

names of originators.<br />

Pultenaea: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Pyracantha<br />

Bertrand, Cadic, and Belin (1992) lists 30 cultivars and three species of the firethorns.<br />

<strong>Cultivar</strong>s of are also listed by Bean (1970-1988), Egolf and Andrick (1995), Laar (1966),<br />

Hachmann et al. (1986b), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Schmalscheidt (1984), and de Vos (1958).<br />

Pyrus<br />

Bean (1970-1988), Bom (1982), and Krüssmann (1984-1986) list ornamental cultivars<br />

of pears. The cultivars of the Callery pear (P. calleryana Decne.) are discussed by Santamour<br />

and McArdle (1983a).<br />

Quercus<br />

The cultivars of the oaks are listed by Wyman (1962f) but with few introduction dates<br />

and little background. Bean (1970-1988), Bom (1982), Grootendorst (1980b), Krüssmann<br />

(1984-1986), and McArdle and Santamour (1985, 1987a, 1987b) thoroughly discuss the<br />

cultivars of oaks. The cultivars of the Lucombe oak, Q. ×hispanica Lam., are discussed by<br />

Plovanich-Jones, Coombes, and Hoa (1999).<br />

Ranunculus<br />

The cultivars of the lesser celandine, R. ficaria L., are discussed by Harper (1999) and<br />

Mattern (1995b).<br />

Raphiolepis<br />

The cultivars of the Indian hawthorns are listed by Hagan et al. (2001) in reference to<br />

their resistance to entomosporium leaf spot, fireblight, and anthracnose in Alabama.<br />

Rhapis<br />

The cultivars of the lady palm are listed by McKamey (1983).<br />

Rheum<br />

The ornamental rhubarbs are discussed by Hinkley (1999).<br />

Rhododendron<br />

Brickell (1980) provides guidelines <strong>for</strong> naming Rhododendron cultivars. The cultivars<br />

of rhododendrons and azaleas are first documented in Street (1954) and later Fletcher (1958)<br />

and Clarke (1960, 1967), and this is updated by Royal Horticultural Society (1964, 1969b,<br />

1988e, 1989d, 1989e, 1990c, 1991b, 1992c, 1993b, 1994b, 1995a, 1996c, 1998c, 1998d, 2000d,<br />

2001d); the registrations from 1962 to 1987 were originally published in The Rhododendron<br />

and Camellia Yearbook and Rhododendron with Magnolias and Camellias. Kraxberger (1980)<br />

lists American Rhododendron hybrids, many of which were originally published in<br />

Rhododendrons and Rhododendron Notebook; more recently the American hybrids have been<br />

listed in the Journal of the American Rhododendron Society. German Rhododendron hybrids<br />

are discussed by Schmalscheidt (1980), while late-flowering cultivars are discussed by<br />

Schmalscheidt (1990), double-flowered rhododendron cultivars are discussed by Schmalscheidt<br />

(1994), early-blooming cultivars are discussed by Schmalscheidt (1993a), and bicolored<br />

cultivars are discussed by Schmalscheidt (1993b). Yellow-flowered cultivars are discussed by<br />

Hoffman (1997). Deciduous hybrids are discussed by Bärtels (1988b). Small-leaved cultivars<br />

are discussed by Hawke (1991). Knap Hill azaleas are discussed by Löcken (1993).<br />

Introductions by Hans Hachmann are discussed by Moser (1993), while introductions by Emil<br />

Pusch are discussed by Moser (1991a). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s derived from R. kiusianum Mak. originated by<br />

Werner Dänhardt are discussed by Moser (1991b). The vireya cultivars are discussed by<br />

Walker and Kenyon (1997). Rhododendrons <strong>for</strong> rockeries are discussed by Köhlein (1990a),<br />

while rhododendrons <strong>for</strong> small gardens are discussed by Schmalscheidt (1988). These<br />

checklists should be used in conjunction with Bärtels (1994c), Bean (1970-1988), Bowers


Tucker-29<br />

(1960), Bryant (2001), Bulgin (1986), Cox (1973, 1985, 1990), Cox and Cox (1988), Davidian<br />

(1982, 1989), Ehsen and Schmalscheidt (1998), Galle (1985), Gelderen and Hoey Smith (1992),<br />

Greer (1982), Grootendorst (1954, 1967b, 1969b, 1969c, 1979a), Hawthorn (1999), Ihei (1984),<br />

Krüssmann (1984-1986), Leach (1961), Lee et al. (1965), Livingston and West (1978),<br />

Morrison (1953), <strong>Phillips</strong> and Barber (1967, 1979), Reich (1996), Reiley (1992), Royal<br />

Horticultural Society (1990e, 1992h, 1993e, 1994f, 1997d, 1998h, 2000e), Salley and Greer<br />

(1986, 1992), Schmalscheidt (1996a, 1996b), Schneider (1965c, 1966b), and Schwirz (1998).<br />

See, also, the ICRA <strong>for</strong> Rhododendron<br />

(http://www.rhs.org.uk/research/registration_rhododendron.asp).<br />

Robinia<br />

The cultivars of the locusts are listed by Bärtels (1993b), Bean (1970-1988), Gibbs<br />

(1929), Grootendorst (1971a), and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Rodgersia<br />

The cultivars of Rodgersia spp. are discussed by zur Linden and zur Linden (1993).<br />

Rosa<br />

A proposed guide to rose name registration is Gioia (1986). <strong>Cultivar</strong> names, code<br />

names, and selling names of roses are discussed by Manners (1999). The most comprehensive<br />

recent checklist of cultivars of roses is Modern Roses XI (Cairns, 2000), but Modern Roses 9<br />

(Haring, 1986), Modern Roses 8 (Meikle, 1980) and Modern Roses 6 (Allan, 1965) may also be<br />

cited as being important <strong>for</strong> some rose cultivars. Stock (1984) lists the older and <strong>for</strong>eign<br />

checklists (especially important <strong>for</strong> heritage roses), such as Boitard (1836), Desportes (1828),<br />

Ellerbroek and de Vink, 1931; Gravereaux (1902), Mansfield (1943), Nietner (1880), Park<br />

(1956), Simon and Cochet (1906), and Singer (1885). Jäger (1960) is a reprint of a privately<br />

distributed list of 1936. The Royal National Rose Society also publishes selected checklists,<br />

most recently in 1976. These should be used in conjunction with Anonymous (1994), Austin<br />

(1988), Beales (1985, 1988), Bean (1970-1988), Dickerson (1992, 1999), Fagan (1988), Gault<br />

and Singe (1971), Griffiths (1984, 1987), Harkness (1991), Hawke (1997b), Krüssmann (1981),<br />

Laros (2001), Macoby (1993), Moody (1992), <strong>Phillips</strong> and Rix (1988, 1998), and Verrier (1991,<br />

1995). The Combined Rose List (Dobson, 1987, 1988, 1989, 1990, 1991; Dobson and<br />

Schneider, 1992, 1993, 1994, 1995, 1996) provides continued up-dating of available roses<br />

around the world with cultivar in<strong>for</strong>mation. Some additional in<strong>for</strong>mation on R. rugosa Thunb.<br />

is supplied by Grimm (1997). <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of R. gallica L. are thoroughly discussed by Joyaux<br />

(1998).<br />

Rosmarinus<br />

The origins and essential oils of cultivars of rosemary are listed by Tucker and<br />

Maciarello (1986).<br />

Rudbeckia<br />

The cultivars of the Rudbeckia spp. are discussed by Nicholson and Hawke (1995).<br />

Saintpaulia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Salix<br />

Newsholme (1992) providces the most comprehensive descriptions of cultivars of Salix,<br />

the willows. The cultivars of the weeping willow (S. babylonica L.) are discussed by Chmelar<br />

(1983) and Santamour and McArdle (1988). Broekhuizen and Schneider (1969) discusses the<br />

cultivars of the white willow (S. alba L.). Anonymous (n.d.), Bean (1970-1988), Houtzagers<br />

(1947), and Krüssmann (1984-1986) also discuss cultivars of willows.<br />

Salvia<br />

The most comprehensive discussions of the cultivars of sage are Clebsch (1997, 2003),<br />

Sutton (1999), and Yeo (1995, 1997). The per<strong>for</strong>mance of some cultivrs of sges are discussed


Tucker-30<br />

by Anonymous (2000b). The cultivars of common sage, S. officinalis L., are listed by Barrett<br />

(1997), Tucker and Maciarello (1990) and Köhlein (1998c).<br />

Sambucus<br />

The cultivars of European red elderberry, S. racemosa L., are described in German and<br />

Latin by Wolf (1923). Bean (1970-1988), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Rücker (1997a) also<br />

discuss cultivars of the elderberries. Some good colored illustrations are provided by Lovejoy<br />

(2001).<br />

Sansevieria<br />

The cultivars of the snakeplants are listed by Morgenstern (1979), Stover (1983), and<br />

Swinbourne (1979) but without introduction dates and background. Chahinian (1986, 1996)<br />

thoroughly treats the cultivars of S. trifasciata. Updates on cultivars of Sansevieria are<br />

published in the journal Sansevieria 6.<br />

Sarracenia: see carnivorous plants<br />

Saxifraga<br />

The most complete discussion of the cultivars of the saxifrages is McGregor (1995).<br />

The saxifrages are listed by Köhlein (1984) but without introduction dates or background.<br />

Harding (1992), Jelitto and Schacht (1990), Trehane (1989), and Webb and Gornall (1989) are<br />

comprehensive lists of species and cultivars. Christl and Fürsch (1995) list the cushion-<strong>for</strong>ming<br />

saxifrages. Bland, Grey-Wilson, and Rolfe (2000) list the cultivars of the silver saxifrages. The<br />

cultivars of the porophyllum saxifrages are listed in Horný, Webr, and Byam-Grounds (1986).<br />

Timothy Golds maintains a Web page that includes cultivars of porphyrion saxifrages<br />

(http://members.aol.com/tgolds3551/).<br />

Scabiosa<br />

The annual derivatives of S. atropurpurea L. are listed by the Royal Horticultural<br />

Society (1926c). Perennial cultivars are listed by Jelitto and Schacht (1990).<br />

Scaevola: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Schizostylis<br />

The cultivars of the Kaffir lily are listed by Straley (1984).<br />

Schlumbergera: see Cactaceae<br />

Sedum<br />

Praeger (1921) and Trehane (1989) list the cultivars of Sedum. The history and<br />

per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of Sedum are discussed by Clausen (1978) and Stephenson (1994).<br />

Hensen and Groendijk-Wilders (1986a) discuss the sedums cultivated in Europe. Mattern<br />

(1995a) discusses the tall sedums. Some cultivars of sedums are listed by Evans (1983) and<br />

Jelitto and Schacht (1990) but without introduction dates or background.<br />

Sempervivum<br />

The cultivars of Sempervivum (and Jovibara) are listed by Mitchell (c. 1973) with some<br />

color photographs and good descriptions but without dates or background. The registrations <strong>for</strong><br />

Sempervivum (and Jovibara and Rosularia) are later published by Mitchell (1982, 1983, 1985).<br />

Trehane (1989) also lists the cultivars of the houseleeks. Martin Miklánek maintains a Web<br />

page <strong>for</strong> cultivars of Sempervivum and Jovibara<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~miklanek/MCS/cv.html).<br />

Serruria see Proteaceae<br />

Sinningia: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Skimmia<br />

The cultivars of Skimmia are discussed by Bean (1970-1988), Brown (1980), Laar<br />

(1984), and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Smithiantha: see Gesneriaceae


Tucker-31<br />

Solenophora: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Solidago<br />

The cultivar sof the goldenrods are discussed by Hawke (2000).<br />

Sophora<br />

The cultivars of the Japanese pagoda tree, S. japonica L., are listed by Bean (1970-<br />

1988), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Schalk (1985).<br />

Sorbus<br />

The cultivars of the mountain ashes are discussed by Anonymous (1965), Bärtels<br />

(1989b, c), Bean (1970-1988), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Müssell (1971), Wright (1981), and<br />

Wyman (1969b). Hensen (1970) discusses the history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of the S.<br />

latifolia (Lam.) Pers. complex. Huttleston (1990) records an additional registration.<br />

Spathiphyllum<br />

The cultivars of the spathiphyllums are briefly listed by Chase et al. (1984).<br />

Spiraea<br />

The cultivars of the spireas are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Dirr (1986), Gelderen<br />

(1989), Grootendorst (1977), and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Spyridium: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Stokesia<br />

Laurence C. Hatch maintains a web page on stokesia cultivars<br />

(http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/stok90.html).<br />

Streptocarpus: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Styrax<br />

The cultivars of the snowbells are listed by Fontaine (1970b) and reviewed by Raulston<br />

(1992).<br />

Syringa<br />

The cultivars of lilacs are thoroughly discussed in Fiala (1988). This should be used in<br />

conjunction with Albrecht (1992), Bean (1970-1988); Belorusets (1990); Bilov, Shtanko, and<br />

Mikhailov (1974); Gromov (1963); Harding (1933); Hoffmann (2000b); Kalva (1980, 1988);<br />

Kelsey and Dayton (1942), Krüssmann (1984-1986); Luneva, Mikhailov, and Sudakova (1989);<br />

McKelvey (1928); Meyer (1952); Rogers (1976); Rubtsov, Zhogoleva, and Lyapunova (1961);<br />

Starcs (1928); Vrugtman (1990c, 1991); and Wister (1927, 1942, 1943, 1953a). The latest<br />

inventory of Russian cultivars has been translated into English by the International Lilac<br />

Society (Rubtsov et al., 1982). Recently the registrations have been published in HortScience<br />

(Vrugtman, 1988, 1989a, 1989b, 1990a, 1991, 1994b, 1996, 1997, 1998, 1999, 2000, 2002),<br />

while Vrugtman (1988) and Wister (1963) summarize previous registrations of lilacs. Snijder<br />

(1999) summarizes the characteristics of 70 cultivars in his doctoral thesis.<br />

Tagetes<br />

The African, French, and signet marigold cultivars are assembled in checklists by<br />

Maatsch and Nolting (1970), Nolting and Zimmer (1975c, 1981, 1987) and Zimmer and Noack<br />

(1998).<br />

Taxodium. see conifers<br />

Taxus: see conifers<br />

Telopea: see Australian (& South African) plants and Proteaceae<br />

Tetratheca: see Australian (& South African) plants<br />

Thuja: see conifers<br />

Thymus<br />

Flannery (1982) records the cultivars of thyme in her thorough Ph.D. thesis. Some<br />

cultivars are also listed in White and White (1994). Laurence C. Hatch provides a web page on


Tucker-32<br />

thymes with links to other pages (http://members.tripod.com/~Hatch_L/thymreg.html).<br />

Tilia<br />

Bean (1970-1988), Grootendorst (1970), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Santamour and<br />

McArdle (1985b) discuss the cultivars of the lindens. The cultivars of the lindens are also listed<br />

by Muir (1984, 1988) and Wyman (1962e) but with few introduction dates and little<br />

background. Huttleston (1989) records additional registrations.<br />

trees, shrubs, and vines (broadleaved)<br />

The best general references on the introduction dates and descriptions of many<br />

broadleaved trees, shrubs, and vines have been Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1984-1986).<br />

Rehder (1940, 1949) also lists many <strong>for</strong>ma epithets; because these were published be<strong>for</strong>e the<br />

first International Code of Nomenclature <strong>for</strong> Cultivated <strong>Plants</strong> in 1952, the <strong>for</strong>ma epithets are<br />

now considered cultivar names. Other woody cultivars are listed by Anonymous (1958g, 1967,<br />

1977, 1988, 1990, 1996, 2000a); Brander (1990); Buckley (1980); Commissie voor de<br />

samenstelling van de Rassenlijst voor Bosbouwgewassen (1990), Darthuizer Boomkwekerijen<br />

B. V. (1987, 1994), Dirr (1990, 1997, 2002); Halfacre and Shawcroft (1989); Hillier (1982,<br />

1991); Laar (1989); Macoboy (1989); Meyer, Mazzeo and Voss (1994); Poor (1984); and<br />

Wyman (1963a, 1963b, 1966, 1967, 1969a, 1974). The mimeographed Swarthmore Plant Notes<br />

(Wister, 1954) are a treasure trove of in<strong>for</strong>mation on cultivars of woody plants but,<br />

un<strong>for</strong>tunately, are not widely distributed. Registrations of recent woody genera have been<br />

published in HortScience (Clemants, 1995, 1996, 1997, 1998; Huttleston, 1986, 1988, 1989,<br />

1990, 1991, 1992, 1993; <strong>Phillips</strong> (1978); Spongberg, 1988, 1989, 1990, 1991, 1992, 1993,<br />

1994b, 1995, 1996; Tebbitt, 1999, 2000, 2002; Vrugtman, 1994a), while Huttleston (1986)<br />

summarizes previous registrations. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of street trees are summarized by Gerhold et al.<br />

(1989) and Wandell (1989). Some trees and shrubs are also discussed in Hogan (1988) and the<br />

journal Dendroflora (see the cumulative indices in numbers 20 and 25). Vines are discussed by<br />

Burras (1994).<br />

Trichantha: see Gesneriaceae<br />

Tricyrtis<br />

The cultivars of the toad lilies are evaluated by Hawkes (2001a).<br />

Trillium<br />

The few cultivars of the trilliums are listed by Jacobs and Jacobs (1997).<br />

Trollius<br />

The cultivars of the globe flowers are listed by Clausen (1973b) and Hensen (1959).<br />

Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and Trehane (1989) also list cultivars.<br />

Tropaeolum<br />

A list of cultivars of the common nasturtium is Kelsey and Dayton (1942) but without<br />

dates of introduction.<br />

Tsuga: see conifers<br />

Tulipa<br />

Even if you have only a casual interest in tulips, you must read Pavord (1999). The<br />

cultivars of tulips are first listed by the Royal Horticultural Society (1908c) with significant<br />

revisions in 1917, 1929, 1930a, and 1939. Later, in 1948 and 1952, the Royal Horticultural<br />

Society published revisions in conjunction with the General Dutch Bulbgrowers Society. Later<br />

the Royal General Bulbgrowers' Society (1958, 1960, 1963, 1965, 1969) and the Royal General<br />

Bulbgrowers' Association (1971, 1976, 1981, 1987) published their own lists. The 1958-1965<br />

editions are comprehensive, but the 1969-1981 editions only provided brief descriptions and<br />

dates <strong>for</strong> many tulips, and "historical cultivars" are appended at the rear of the list with no dates<br />

or descriptions. The cultivar groups are outlined by van Scheepen (1995). The register of van


Tucker-33<br />

Scheepen (1996) is probably the most comprehensive published, although frequent reference is<br />

made to the Classified List of the Royal General Bulbgrowrs’ Society (1958). Schmid (1998)<br />

lists the named hybrids of T. fosteriana Hoog ex W. Irv. Baker (1999), Bonar (1992), Kelsey<br />

and Dayton (1924), Hall (1928), Kudryavtseva (1987), Malova (2001), and Trehane (1989) are<br />

also recommended. Van Raamsdonk and de Vries (1996) discuss cultivar classification.<br />

Ulmus<br />

The cultivars of the elms are listed by Bean (1970-1988), Fontaine (1968), Green<br />

(1964), Houtzagers (1947), Krüssmann (1984-1986), Lombarts (1993), Santamour and Bentz<br />

(1995), and Touw (1963). Spongberg (1988, 1991) records additional registrations.<br />

variegated plants<br />

The only work on cultivars of variegated plants is Yokoi and Hirose (1978). While the<br />

text is in Japanese, plant names are in English.<br />

Veronica<br />

The history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of cultivars of Veronica are discussed by Clausen (1971),<br />

Gelderen (1990), and Jelitto and Schacht (1990), while Trehane (1989) also lists cultivars.<br />

Viburnum<br />

The cultivars of the viburnums are listed by Baudouin (1997), Bean (1970-1988), Egolf<br />

(1968), Houtman (1998), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Toussaint (1997). Grootendorst (1979b)<br />

and Hoffman (1998) discuss the cultivars of Viburnum plicatum.<br />

Vinca<br />

Barnes (1984) and Hensen (1980) discuss the history and per<strong>for</strong>mance of the cultivars of<br />

Vinca. Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and Trehane (1989) also list cultivars.<br />

Viola<br />

Jelitto and Schacht (1990) and Trehane (1989) list the cultivars of Viola. The history<br />

and per<strong>for</strong>mance of the cultivars of Viola cornuta L., the viola, are discussed by Clausen (1969)<br />

and the Royal Horticultural Society (1912, 1913a). The cultivars of violets are treated<br />

comprehensively by Coombs (1981), while Wachsmuth (1998) also discusses the cultivars of<br />

the sweet violet, V. odorata L., and the Russian violet, V. suavis Bieb. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of pansies,<br />

violas, and violettas are listed by Fuller (1990, 1994) without dates or introducers. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of<br />

violets and violas are listed at http://www.sweetviolets.com.<br />

Weigela<br />

The cultivars of the weigelas are listed by Grootendorst (1968c), Howard (1965), and<br />

Schneider (1930). Bean (1970-1988) and Krüssmann (1958a, 1984-1986) also discuss<br />

cultivars. Spongberg (1988) records an additional registration. Thomas List maintains a Web<br />

page (http://www.weigela.de) on weigela cultivars.<br />

Wisteria<br />

The best list of Wisteria species and cultivars is Valder (1995). Bowden (1976) and<br />

Browse (1984) review the available cultivars of the wisterias but without introduction dates or<br />

background. Sprenger (1911) lists the cultivars of W. sinensis (Sims) Sweet. Bean (1970-<br />

1988), Grootendorst (1968d), Krüssmann (1984-1986), and Laar (1997b) also discuss cultivars.<br />

Huttleston (1988) records an additional registration. <strong>Check</strong> out Eisenhut’s Web page<br />

(http://www.eisenhut.ch/wisteria_en.htm) <strong>for</strong> cultivars of Wisteria.<br />

Zea<br />

The ornamental seed lines of corn or maize, Zea mays L., are discussed by Vernon<br />

(1997).<br />

Zelkova<br />

The cultivars of the zelkovas are listed by Andrews (1994), Bean (1970-1988), Dirr<br />

(1990), Fontaine (1970c), and Krüssmann (1984-1986).


Tucker-34<br />

Zephyranthes<br />

The cultivars of the rain lilies are listed by Anonymous (1958e).<br />

Zinnia<br />

The modern cultivars of Zinnia are listed, with some history, by Sharma and Metcalf<br />

(1968); Köhlein (1998d) also lists some zinnia cultivars.<br />

Acknowledgements<br />

We would all like to thank the International <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authorities and the<br />

librarians at Arnold Arboretum, Delaware State University, Longwood Gardens, Mann Library,<br />

National Arboretum, National Agricultural Library, New York Botanical Garden, Pennsylvania<br />

Horticultural Society, Royal Botanical Gardens, Smithsonian (Botany), and University of<br />

Delaware. The senior author would also thanks the Cooperative State Research Service (#801-<br />

15-01C) and the state of Delaware <strong>for</strong> financial assistance and Delaware State University <strong>for</strong><br />

supporting the server <strong>for</strong> this Web page.<br />

PLEASE!<br />

Notice of any corrections, updates, and/or additions to this listing would be greatly appreciated<br />

and should be sent to Arthur O. Tucker (atucker@dsc.edu). Thanks!<br />

Literature Cited<br />

Abbott, P. 1994. The Peter Abbott guide to scented Geraniaceae. Hill Publ. Serv., Angmering,<br />

England.<br />

Adam, C. G. 1982. Ajugas. Quart. Bull. Alpine Gard. Soc. 50(1):82-84.<br />

Addyman, M., and R. Clifton. 1992. Erodiums in cultivation. Natl. Council Conserv. Pl.<br />

Garden., Woking, England.<br />

Aden, P., ed. 1990. The hosta book. Second ed. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Agnew, N. H., and H. J. Lang. 1992. Outstanding New Guinea impatiens. Greenhouse<br />

Manager 10(10):66-70.<br />

Ahlburg, M. S. 1991. Neuere Helleborus-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 17(1):8-11.<br />

_____ . 1993. Hellebores: Christmas rose, Lenten rose. Transl. M. S. Ahlburg and J. Hewitt. B.<br />

T. Bats<strong>for</strong>d Ltd., London.<br />

Ahrendt, L. W. A. 1942. An analysis of the Wisley hybrid Berberis. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 67:129-<br />

135.<br />

_____ . 1949. The Berberis stenophylla hybrids. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 74:36-40.<br />

_____ . 1961. Berberis and Mahonia: A taxonomic revision. J. Linn. Soc., Bot. 57:1-410.<br />

Albrecht, H.-J. 1991. Sanddorn. Gartenpraxis 17(6):27-29.<br />

_____ . 1992. Aktuelle Fliedersorten. Gartenpraxis 18(11):20-23.<br />

Allan, P. 1988. Naming of cultivated plants. Protea News 7:18-22.<br />

Allen, I. 1983. Adventures with asters. Hardy Pl. Soc. Bull. 6(3):75-79.<br />

Allen, R. C. 1965. Modern roses 6. McFarland Co., Harrisburg.<br />

Allison, D. 1998. Kulturwürdige Polemonium-Arten und -Sorten. Gartenpraxis 24(6):8-13.<br />

Althofer, G. W. 1978. Cradle of incense: The story of Australian Prostanthera. Soc. Growing<br />

Austral. Pl.<br />

American Association of Nurserymen. 1957. Plant patents: Common introductory names 1<br />

through 1542. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.


Tucker-35<br />

_____ . 1958. 1957 Supplement to plant patents: Common introductory names 1543 through<br />

1671. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1959. 1958 Supplement to plant patents: Common introductory names 1672 through<br />

1791. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1960. 1959 Supplement to plant patents: Common introductory names 1792 through<br />

1892. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1961. 1960 Supplement to plant patents: Common introductory names 1893 through<br />

2007. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1962. 1961 Supplement to plant patents: Common introductory names 2009 through<br />

2116. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1963. Plant patents with common names 1 through 2207. 1931-1962. Amer. Assoc.<br />

Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1967. Supplement to plant patents with common names 2699 through 2783. Amer.<br />

Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1969. Plant patents with common names 2208 through 2855. 1963-1968. Amer.<br />

Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1974. Plant patents with common names 2856 through 3412. 1969-1973. Amer.<br />

Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1981. Plant patents with common names 3413-4359. 1974-1978. Amer. Assoc.<br />

Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . c. 1987. How to use, select, and register cultivar names. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen,<br />

Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1990. Plant patent directory. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen, Washington, D.C.<br />

American Begonia Society. 1957. Buxton check list of begonias. Amer. Begonia Soc., Los<br />

Angeles.<br />

_____ . 1958. Buxton checklist of begonias. Supplement No. 1. Amer. Begonia Soc., Los<br />

Angeles.<br />

_____ . 1962. Buxton check list of begonias. Supplement No. 2. Amer. Begonia Soc., Los<br />

Angeles.<br />

_____ . 1967. Buxton check list of begonias. Supplement No. 3. Amer. Begonia Soc., Los<br />

Angeles.<br />

_____ . 1985. Catalog of registered cultivars of the genus Begonia. Volume 1. Registration<br />

Numbers 1-100. Amer. Begonia Soc., Encinitas, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

American Daffodil Society. 1977. Daffodils to show and grow. Amer. Daffodil Soc., New<br />

Canaan, Connecticut.<br />

_____ . 1980. Daffodils to show and grow and abridged classified list of daffodil names. 2nd<br />

ed. Amer. Daffodil Soc., Tyner, North Carolina.<br />

_____ . 1985. Daffodils to show and grow and abridged classified list of daffodil names. 3rd<br />

ed. Amer. Daffodil Soc., Hernando, Mississippi.<br />

_____ . 1989. Daffodils to show and grow and abridged classified list of daffodil names. 4th<br />

ed. Amer. Daffodil Soc., Hernando, Mississippi.<br />

_____ . 1994. Daffodils to show and grow and abridged classified list of daffodil names. 5th<br />

ed. Amer. Daffodil Soc., Mil<strong>for</strong>d, Ohio.


Tucker-36<br />

_____ . 1997. Illustrated data bank: CD Rom of 2500 photos. Amer. Daffodil Soc., Mil<strong>for</strong>d,<br />

Ohio.<br />

American Dahlia Society. 1989. 1989 Classification and handbook of dahlias. Amer. Dahlia<br />

Soc.<br />

American Gesneria Society. 1957. Names and descriptions of plants currently in the trade.<br />

Achimenes. Episcia. xGloxinera. Smithiantha. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gesneriad J.<br />

4(4)]<br />

American Gladiolus Society. 1931. Descriptive gladiolus nomenclature. Amer. Gladiolus Soc.<br />

American Gloxinia Society. 1962. Names and descriptions of plants commercially available.<br />

Kohleria. Smithiantha. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 12(5)]<br />

American Hemerocallis Society. 1957. Hemerocallis check list 1893 to July 1, 1957. Amer.<br />

Hemerocallis Soc.<br />

_____ . c. 1973. Hemerocallis check list July 1, 1957 to July 1, 1973. Amer. Hemerocallis<br />

Soc.<br />

_____ . c. 1984. Hemerocallis check list July 1, 1973 to December 31, 1983. Amer.<br />

Hemerocallis Soc.<br />

_____ . 1989. Hemerocallis check list. January 1, 1984 to December 31, 1988. Amer.<br />

Hemerocallis Soc.<br />

_____ . 1994. Hemerocallis check list 1989-1993. Amer. Hemerocallis Soc.<br />

American Hibiscus Society. 1984. Hibiscus catalogue. Amer. Hibiscus Soc.<br />

_____ . 1987. Nomenclature of the American Hibiscus Society. Amer. Hibiscus Soc.<br />

American Hosta Society. 1991. Index to hostas as they appear in The American Hosta Society<br />

Bulletin/Journal Volumes 1 through 21. Amer. Hosta Soc., Alliance, Ohio.<br />

_____ . 1993. The genus Hosta: List of registered cultivars. Registrations through 1991. Amer.<br />

Hosta Soc.<br />

_____ . 2000. The genus Hosta: List of registered cultivars. Registrations 1992-1998 with<br />

complete index. Amer. Hosta Soc.<br />

Anderson, A. J. 1971. Osmunda regalis and its <strong>for</strong>ms. Gard. Chron. 169(11):32.<br />

Andrews, J. 1984. Peppers: The domesticated capsicums. Univ. Texas Press, Austin.<br />

Andrews, S. 1983. Notes on some Ilex × altaclerensis clones. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5:64-81.<br />

_____ . 1984. More notes on clones of Ilex × altaclerensis. <strong>Plants</strong>man 6:157-166.<br />

_____ . 1986. The clones of Ilex × altaclerensis. Acta Hort. 182:377-380.<br />

_____ . 1992. Tree of the year: Liriodendron. Int. Dendrol. Society Year Book 1992:15-19.<br />

_____ . 1994. Tree of the year: Zelkova. Int. Dendrol. Society Year Book 1993:11-31.<br />

Anonymous. n.d. Willow varieties <strong>for</strong> Alaska. Plant Mater. Center, Palmer, Alaska.<br />

_____ . 1958a. Oleander. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 10:1-8.<br />

_____ . 1958b. Plumeria. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 14:1-11.<br />

_____ . 1958c. Ixora. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 15:1-14.<br />

_____ . 1958d. Lantana. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 19:1-12.<br />

_____ . 1958e. Cooperanthes and Zephyranthes. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard.20:1-34.<br />

_____ . 1958f. Amaryllis. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 21:1-27.<br />

_____ . 1958g. Rassenlijst voor loofhoutgewassen. Stichting Verbetering Houtopstanden,<br />

Wageningen.


Tucker-37<br />

_____ . 1959a. Codiaeum (croton). Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 31:1-24.<br />

_____ . 1959b. Cosmos (Cosmea). Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 34:1-16.<br />

_____ . 1959c. Bougainvillea. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 41:1-35.<br />

_____ . 1959d. Cordylines & dracaenas. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard. 42:1-18.<br />

_____ . 1960. Nymphaea, Nelumbo, Euryale and Victoria. Bull. Lucknow Natl. Bot. Gard.<br />

50:1-20.<br />

_____ . 1965. Sorbus. Dendroflora 2:28-44.<br />

_____ . 1967. Keur van opstanden en beplantingen voor zaadwinning in Nederland. Lijst van<br />

herkomsten van naald- en loofhoutgewassen. 1963-1967. Stichting<br />

Bosbouwproefstation 'De Dorschkamp’. Wageningen.<br />

_____ . 1977. Rassenlijst van naald- en loofbomen voor bos- en landschapsbouw in Nederland<br />

(rassenlijst voor bosbouwgewassen bevattende herkomsten en rassen van naald- en<br />

loofbomen). 1970-1977. Stichting Bosbouwproefstation 'De Dorschkamp’,<br />

Wageningen.<br />

_____ . 1988. Aanvulling op de vierde rassenlijst van bosbouwgewassen. Complement to the<br />

fourth list of clones and provenances of <strong>for</strong>est trees. 'De Dorschkamp’. Wageningen.<br />

_____ . 1990. 5 e Rassenlijst van bomen. Fifth list of approved clones and provenances of trees.<br />

Leiter-Nypels B.V., Maastricht.<br />

_____ . 1991. Oleanders – Guide to culture and selected varieties on Galveston Island. Intern.<br />

Oleander Soc., Galveston, Texas.<br />

_____ . 1994. 4 e Beschrijvende rassenlijst voor siergewassen 1994. Bloemisterijgewassen.<br />

DLO-Centrum voor Plantenveredelings- en Reproduktieonderzoek, Wageningen.<br />

_____ . 1996. 6 e Rassenlijst van bomen. Sixth list of recommended varieties and provenances<br />

of trees. Centrum voor Plantenveredelings- en Reproduktieonderzoek, Wageningen.<br />

_____ . 2000a. 7 e Rassenlijst van bomen. Sixth list of recommended varieties and provenances<br />

of trees. Centrum voor Plantenveredelings- en Reproduktieonderzoek, Wageningen.<br />

_____ . 2000b. A per<strong>for</strong>mance appraisal of hardy sages. Pl. Eval. Notes. No. 14.<br />

Aril Society. 1976. The Aril Society international official checklist. Aril Soc.<br />

_____ . 1978. The Aril Society international official checklist. Addendum number one. Aril<br />

Soc.<br />

_____ . 1980. The Aril Society international official checklist. Addendum number two. Aril<br />

Soc.<br />

_____ . 1982. The Aril Society international official checklist. Addendum number three. Aril<br />

Soc.<br />

Armitage, A. M. 1987. Showy anemones lend a spectrum of color to gardens. Amer.<br />

Nurseryman 166(8):61-64, 66.<br />

_____ . 2000. Armitage’s garden perennials: A color encyclopedia. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Arnold, P. 1963a. Names and descriptions of plants commercially available in the genus<br />

Episcia. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 13(1)].<br />

_____ . 1963b. Names and descriptions of plants commercially available in the genus<br />

Columnea. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 13(6)].<br />

_____ . 1966. Names and descriptions of plants commercially available in the genus Columnea.


Tucker-38<br />

Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 16(3)].<br />

_____ . 1968. Names and descriptions of plants commercially cultivated in the genus Episcia.<br />

Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 18(1)].<br />

_____ . 1969. Names and descriptions of plants commercially available in the genus Achimenes<br />

and registered cultivar names. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 19(5)].<br />

_____ . 1972. Names and descriptions of cultivated plants in the genus Streptocarpus.<br />

Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 22(5)].<br />

_____ . 1975. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genus Sinningia.<br />

Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 25(2)].<br />

_____ . 1977. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genus Episcia.<br />

Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 27(2)].<br />

_____ . 1978. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with description of cultivated plants in the genus<br />

Nematanthus. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 28(5)].<br />

_____ . 1979. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genus<br />

Streptocarpus. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 29(6)].<br />

Ashburner, K. 1986. Alnus __ A survey. <strong>Plants</strong>man 8:170-188.<br />

_____ . 1980. Betula __ A survey. <strong>Plants</strong>man 2:31-53.<br />

Austin, D. 1988. The heritage of the rose. Antique Collectors' Club, Woodbridge, England.<br />

Australian <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority. 1988. Registered cultivars. Austral. <strong>Cultivar</strong><br />

Registration Authority.<br />

Australian Geranium Society. 1978. A check list and register of Pelargonium cultivar names.<br />

Part one. A-B. Austral. Geranium Soc., Sydney.<br />

_____ . 1985. A check list and register of Pelargonium cultivar names. Part two. C-F. Austral.<br />

Geranium Soc., Sydney.<br />

Bachtell, K. R., and E. R. Hasselkus. 1982. Selecting varieties of shrub Potentilla <strong>for</strong> the<br />

Midwest. Amer. Nurseryman 155(3):83-89.<br />

Bacon, L. 1973. Alpines. David & Charles, Newton Abbot, Great Britain.<br />

Bärtels, A. 1988a. Weissglockenstrauch. Gartenpraxis 14(30:8-13.<br />

_____ . 1988b. Sommergrüne Rhododendronhybriden. Gartenpraxis 14(6):26-31.<br />

_____ . 1989a. Die Japanische Sicheltanne. Gartenpraxis 15(40:28-33.<br />

_____ . 1989b. Europäische Sorbusarten (1). Gartenpraxis 15(6):12-16.<br />

_____ . 1989c. Europäische Sorbusarten (2). Gartenpraxis 15(7):32-35.<br />

_____ . 1990. Haseln als Ziersträucher. Gartenpraxis 16(12):18-21.<br />

_____ . 1991a. Die Hinoki-Scheinzypresse und ihre Garten<strong>for</strong>men. Gartenpraxis 17(4):20-28.<br />

_____ . 1991b. Chamaecyparis lawsoniana und ihre Garten<strong>for</strong>men. Gartenpraxis 17(12):8-17.<br />

_____ . 1992a. Blütenreiche Deutzien. Gartenpraxis 19(1):30-35.<br />

_____ . 1992b. Hybrid-Zaubernüsse. Gartenpraxis 19(2):22-24.<br />

_____ . 1992c. Winterharte Schirmhortensien für den Garten. Gartenpraxis 19(5):14-17.<br />

_____ . 1992d. Fingersträucher. Gartenpraxis 18(6):14-19.<br />

_____ . 1993a. Anspruchsvoller Cercis. Gartenpraxis 29(2):30-33.<br />

_____ . 1993b. Robinien. Gartenpraxis 19(12):34-39.<br />

_____ . 1994a. Die Kanadische Hemmlocktanne. Gartenpraxis 20(2):42-45.


Tucker-39<br />

_____ . 1994b. Perückensträucher. Gartenpraxis 20(7):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1994c. Neuheiten auf der Rhodo ’94. Gartenpraxis 20(8):22-27.<br />

_____ . 1995. Gartenwürdige Blasenspieren. Gartenpraxis 21(2):22-25.<br />

_____ . 1995. Rotlaubige Berberitzen. Gartenpraxis 21(5):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1998a. Sommergrüne Berberitzen. Gartenpraxis 24(6):19-26.<br />

_____ . 1998b. Die besten Fingersträucher. Gartenpraxis 24(4):20-23.<br />

Bagust, H. 1988. Miniature and dwarf geraniums (pelargoniums). Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Bailey, S. 1990. Carnations. Bland<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Baker, C. 1999. Tulipa: A photographer’s botanical. Artisan, New York.<br />

Baker, G., and P. Ward. 1995. Auriculas. B. T. Bats<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Banner, W., and W. Klopmeyer, eds. 1995. New Guinea impatiens. Batavia, Illinois: Ball<br />

Publ., Batavia.<br />

Barker, D. G. 1996. Epimediums and other herbaceous Berberidaceae. Hardy Pl. Soc.,<br />

Pershore, England.<br />

Barnes, P. 1984. Trial of Vinca cultivars. Garden (London) 109:426-429.<br />

Barret, P. W. 1959. Aster ericoides. Hardy Pl. Soc. Bull. 2(1):17-18.<br />

Barrett, P. 1997. Growing & using sage. Storey Commun., Pownal, Vermont.<br />

Bartlett, G. 2000. Fuchias: The new cultivars. Crowood Press, Marlborough, England.<br />

Bartlett, M. 1975. Gentians. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, Poole, England.<br />

Batcheller, F. N. 1985. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genus<br />

Kohleria. Ed. J. D. Dates. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 35(5)].<br />

Batdorf, L. R. 1987. International registration list of cultivated Buxus L. Boxwood Bull. 26:76-<br />

81.<br />

_____ . 1989. <strong>Check</strong>list of Buxus L. Boxwood Bull. 28(3):43-49.<br />

_____ . 1995. Boxwood handbook. Boyce, Virginia: Amer. Boxwood Soc. Available from:<br />

American Boxwood Society, Boyce, Virginia.<br />

Bath, T., and J. Jones. 1994. The gardener’s guide to growing hardy geraniums. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

Baudouin, J. C. 1997. Quelques observations sur le genre Viburnum. Belg. Dendrol. 1997:52-<br />

61.<br />

Baxter, G. 1999. The 1998 Hemerocallis cultivar registration. Daylily J. Vol. 54, Suppl.<br />

Beadle, D. A. 1991. A preliminary listing of all known cultivar and grex names <strong>for</strong> the<br />

Bromeliaceae. Bromeliad Soc., Corpus Christi, Texas.<br />

Beal, A. C. 1920. The peony: a flower <strong>for</strong> the farmer. Cornell Reading Course <strong>for</strong> the Farm,<br />

Lesson 154.<br />

Beales, P. 1985. Classic roses. Holt, Rinehart and Winston, New York.<br />

_____ . 1988. Twentieth-century roses. Harper & Row, New York.<br />

Bell, M. 2000. The gardener’s guide to growing temperate bamboos. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Bean, W. K. 1970-1988. Trees and shrubs hardy in the British Isles. John Murray, London. 4<br />

vols. + suppl.<br />

Becker, J., and F. Brawner. 1996. Scented geraniums: Knowing, growing, and enjoying<br />

scented pelargoniums. Interweave Press, Loveland, Colorado.<br />

Beckett, K. A. 1983. Bergenia. Garden (London) 108:480-484.


Tucker-40<br />

_____ , ed. 1993. Encyclopedia of alpines. Vol. 1. A-K. Alpine Gard. Soc., Pershore,<br />

Worcestershire, England.<br />

_____ , ed. 1994. Encyclopedia of alpines. Vol. 2 L-Z. Alpine Gard. Soc., Pershore,<br />

Worcestershire, England.<br />

Beers, L., and J. Howie. 1985. Growing hibiscus. Kangaroo Press, Kenthurst, Australia.<br />

_____ . 1990. Growing hibiscus. Second ed. Kangaroo Press, Kenthurst, Australia.<br />

Belorusets, E. Sh. 1990. Siren' [in Russian]. Uroshai, Kiev.<br />

Bergen, M. van, and W. Snoeijer. 1996. Catharanthus G. Don: The Madagascar periwinkle<br />

and related species. Wageningen Agric. Univ. Pap. 96-3.<br />

Berry, F., and W. J. Kress. 1991. Heliconia: An identification guide. Smithsonian Inst. Press,<br />

Washington, D.C.<br />

Bertrand, H. 2001. Preliminary Hydrangea checklist. Ministère de l’Agriculture et de la Pêche,<br />

Institut National d’Horticulture, Angers.<br />

_____ , A. Cadic, and J. Belin. 1992. Pyracantha. P.H.M. (Revue Horticole), Maisons-Al<strong>for</strong>t,<br />

France.<br />

Bilov, V. E., I. I. Shtanko, and N. L. Mikhailov. 1974. Siren' [in Russian]. Hayka, Moskow.<br />

Birch, C. H. 1940. Parentages of named varieties. Gladiolus 1940:33-40.<br />

Bird, R. 1991. Lilies. Chartwell Books, Secaucus, New Jersey.<br />

Bishop, F. 1949. The delphinium: A flower monograph. Collins, London.<br />

Bland, B., C. Grey-Wilson, and R. Rolfe, eds. 2000. Silver saxifrages: A guide to Ligulatae<br />

saxifrages and their cultivars. AGS Publ., Pershore, England.<br />

Blasdale, W. C. 1948. The cultivated species of Primula. Univ. Cali<strong>for</strong>nia Press, Berkeley.<br />

Bloom, A. 1983. Adrien Bloom’s guide to alpines. Jarrold Colour Publications, Norwich,<br />

Great Britain.<br />

Boitard, P. 1836. Manuel complet de l'amateur de roses. Libr. Encycl. Roret, Paris.<br />

Boland, M. 1983. African violet master variety list 1976-1983. Registered varieties 1948-<br />

1983. African Violet Soc. Amer, Knoxville, Tennessee.<br />

_____ . 1984. The 1984 master list of African violets. African Violet Mag. 37(4):43-55.<br />

_____ . 1985. The 1985 master list of African violets. African Violet Mag. 38(4):Suppl.<br />

_____ . 1986. The 1986 master list of African violets. African Violet Mag. 39(5):31-42.<br />

_____ . 1987. The 1987 master list of African violets. African Violet Mag. 40(6):27-45.<br />

_____ . 1988. The 1988 master list of African violets. African Violet Mag. 41(6):Suppl.<br />

Bolscher, G. J. J., and C. J. M. van der Wurff. 1998. Morus – Moerbei. Dendroflora 35:45-57.<br />

_____ , and F. H. C. Nouwens. 1999. Acer campestre: cultuurwaarde-onderzoek. Dendroflora<br />

36:35-39.<br />

Bom, P. L. M. van der. 1982. Amerikaanse selecties van straat-, laan- en parkbomen.<br />

Dendroflora 19:46-76.<br />

Bonar, A. 1992. Tulips. Running Press, Philadelphia.<br />

Bond, J. 1982. Pieris - A survey. <strong>Plants</strong>man 4:65-75.<br />

_____ . and R. Lancaster. 1996. Burning bushes. Garden (London) 121:282-287.<br />

Bos, J. J. 1998. Exochorda – Parelstruik. Dendroflora 35:34-39.<br />

Boullemier, L. B. 1975. A check list of species, hybrids and cultivars of the genus Fuchsia<br />

with 1976 addendum No. 1, 1978 addendum No. 2. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, Poole, England.<br />

_____ . 1980. Addendum No. 3 to a check list of species, hybrids and cultivars of the genus<br />

Fuchsia. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, Poole, England.


Tucker-41<br />

_____ . 1982. Addendum No. 4 to a check list of species, hybrids and cultivars of the genus<br />

Fuchsia. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, Poole, England.<br />

_____ . 1985. The checklist of species, hybrids and cultivars of the genus Fuchsia. Bland<strong>for</strong>d<br />

Press, Poole, England.<br />

Bourne, S. E. 1903. The book of the daffodil. John Lane, London.<br />

Bowden, W. M. 1957. Cytotaxonomy of Potentilla fruticosa, allied species and cultivars. J.<br />

Arnold Arbor. 38:381-388.<br />

_____ . 1976. A survey of Wisterias in southern Ontario gardens. Roy. Bot. Gard. Techn. Bull.<br />

No. 8.<br />

_____ . 1983. Descriptions of eighteen tetraploid Lobelia cultivars. Wray M. Bowden, Simcoe,<br />

Ontario, Canada.<br />

Bowers, C. G. 1960. Rhododendrons and azaleas: Their origin, cultivation and development.<br />

Macmillan Co., New York.<br />

Bowles, E. A. 1934. A handbook of narcissus. Martin Hopkinson, London.<br />

_____ . 1952. A handbook of crocus and colchicum <strong>for</strong> gardeners. Rev. ed. Bodley Head,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1956. Garden varieties of Galanthus. Pages 65-70 in F. C. Stern, Snowdrops and<br />

snowflakes. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

Bown, D. 2000. Aroids: <strong>Plants</strong> of the arum family. Second ed. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Bradshaw, D. 1996. Lonicera: Climbing honeysuckles. Natl. Council Conserv. Pl. Garden.,<br />

Woking, England.<br />

Brandenburg, S. A. 2000. Meclatis in Clematis: Yellow flowering Clematis species. Wiliam A.<br />

Brandenburg, Wageningen.<br />

Brander, P. E. 1990. Beskrivelse af selekterede kloner af traeer og buske til anlaeg, hegn,<br />

haekke og haver. Description of selected clones of trees and shrubs <strong>for</strong> parks, hedges<br />

and gardens. Landbrugsministeriet Statens Planteavls<strong>for</strong>søg.<br />

Brearley, C. 1987. The shrubby potentillas. <strong>Plants</strong>man 9:90-109.<br />

Brickell, C. D. 1979. The hybrids between Mahonia japonica and M. lomariifolia. <strong>Plants</strong>man<br />

1:12-20..<br />

_____ . 1980. Rhododendron cultivars, their nomenclature and international registration, p. 63-<br />

73. In: J. L. Luteyn (ed.). Contributions toward a classification of Rhododendron. New<br />

York Bot. Gard., New York.<br />

_____ , ed. 1980. International code of nomenclature <strong>for</strong> cultivated plants-1980. Bohn,<br />

Scheltema & Holkmena, Utrecht.<br />

_____ , and B. Mathew. 1976. Daphne: The genus in the wild and in cultivation. Alpine Gard.<br />

Soc., Woking, England.<br />

Brilmayer, B. 1960. All about begonias. Doubleday & Co., Garden City, New York.<br />

British Pelargonium and Geranium Society. 1970. BPGS <strong>Check</strong> List. Erodium. British<br />

Pelargonium and Geranium Soc.<br />

Brits, G. J. 1988a. <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration: International protea cultivar registration. Protea News<br />

7:3-5.<br />

_____ . 1988b. Sample list of validly published protea cultivar names. Protea News 7:6-10.<br />

_____ . 1988c. International naming and registration of protea cultivars. Ed. P. Mathews.<br />

Protea News 7:11-17.<br />

Broekhuizen, J. T. M. van. 1977. Het geslacht Populus; Taxonomie en overzicht van de


Tucker-42<br />

belangrijkste soorten en hybriden. Dendroflora 13/14:40-49.<br />

_____ , and F. Schneider. 1969. Salix alba als laanboom. Dendroflora 6:67-74.<br />

Bromeliad Society. 1989. Final tentative list of bromeliad cultivars. Bromeliad Soc.<br />

Brookins, L. 1989. The 1989 cumulative check list of Siberian iris. Society <strong>for</strong> Siberian Irises.<br />

_____ . 1991a. The 1991 cumulative check list of reblooming iris. Amer. Iris Soc., Reblooming<br />

Iris Soc., Menomonee Falls, Wisconsin.<br />

_____ . 1991b. The 1991 cumulative check list of Siberian iris. Amer. Iris Soc., Soc. Siberian<br />

Irises, Menomonee Falls, Wisconsin.<br />

_____ , ed. 1992. The 1992 cumulative check list of Japanese irises. Japanese Iris. Soc.<br />

_____ , ed. 1997. The 1996 cumulative check list of Siberian irises. Amer. Iris Soc., Soc.<br />

Siberian Irises, Menomonee Falls, Wisconsin.<br />

Brown, A. G. 1973. Hybrid Streptocarpus. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 98:201-205.<br />

Brown, B. F. 1960. Florida's beautiful crotons. Amer. Codiaeum Soc.<br />

Brown, P. D. 1980. The genus Skimmia as found in cultivation. <strong>Plants</strong>man 1:224-249.<br />

Browse, P. M. 1984. Some notes on members of the genus Wisteria and their propagation.<br />

<strong>Plants</strong>man 6:109-122.<br />

Bryan, J.E. 1989. Bulbs. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon. 2 vols.<br />

Bryan, J. E. 2002. Bulbs. Rev. ed. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Bryant, G. 2001. Rhododendrons and azaleas. Firefly Books, Toronto.<br />

Buchtmann, H.-G. 1999. Ilex crenata. Pages 55-66 in Rhododendron und immergrüne<br />

Laubgehölze Jahrbuch 1999. Deutsche Rhododendron-Gesellschaft, Bremen.<br />

_____ . 2002. Neue Ilex-Sorten erobern unsere Gärten. Rhododendron Immergrüne Labugeh.<br />

2002:68-82.<br />

Buckley, A. R. 1980. Trees and shrubs of the Dominion Arboretum. Res. Branch, Agric.<br />

Canada Publ. 1697.<br />

Buczaki, S. 1998. Best geraniums. Hamlyn, London.<br />

Bugala, W. 1970. Nowe odmiany jasminowcow (Philadelphus) wyhodowane w Kórniku przez<br />

A. Wróblewskiego. Aboretum Kórnickie 15:51-60.<br />

Bulgin, L. W. 1986. Rhododendron hybrids: A compendium by parent. Ellanhurst Gard.,<br />

Sherwood, Oregon.<br />

Burras, J. K., ed. 1994. Manual of climbers and wall plants. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Butler, G. 1995. The Australian <strong>Cultivar</strong> Registration Authority: Achievemetns and<br />

challenges. Acta Hort. 413:125-129.<br />

Byrne, N. J. 1986. Industrial patents <strong>for</strong> plant cultivars and breeding methods. Pages 385-391<br />

in B. T. Styles, ed. Infraspecific classification of wild and cultivated plants. Clarendon<br />

Press, Ox<strong>for</strong>d.<br />

Caillet, M., J. F. Campbell, K. C. Vaughn, and D. Vercher, eds. 2000. the Louisiana iris: The<br />

taming of a native American wildflower. Second e. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ , and J. K. Metzweiller. 1988. The Louisiana iris: The history and culture of five native<br />

American species and their hybrids. Soc. Louisiana Irises.<br />

Cairns, T., ed. 2000. Modern roses XI. Academic Press, New York.<br />

Carruthers, L., and R. Ginns. 1973. Echeverias. Arco Publ. Co., New York.<br />

Cash, C. 1991. The slipper orchids. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Chadbund, G. 1972. Flowering cherries. Collins, London.<br />

Chadwick, A. F. 1988. Plant patent literature. Part I: General overview. Herb, Spice, &<br />

Medicinal Pl. Dig. 6(1):7-8, 13.


Tucker-43<br />

Chadwick, L. C., and R. A. Keen. 1976. A study of the genus Taxus. Ohio Agric. Res.<br />

Developm. Center Res. Bull. 1086.<br />

Chahinian, B. J. 1986. The Sansevieria trifasciata varieties. Trans Terra Publ., Reseda,<br />

Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 1996. The Sansevieria trifasciata varieties. Trans Terra Publ., Reseda, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Chalk, D. 1988. Hebes and parahebes. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Chapple, F. J. 1951. The heather garden. W. H. & L. Collingridge, London.<br />

Chase, A. R., R. T. Poole, L. S. Osborne, and R. J. Henny. 1984. Spathiphyllum. Foliage Dig.<br />

7(7):6-8.<br />

Cheek, R. 1979. New Zealand flax. Garden (London) 104:101-106.<br />

_____ . 1993. La belle marguerite. Garden (London) 118:350-355.<br />

Chen, J. 1999. Annual report of International Mei (Prunus mume) Register (1999). China<br />

Foestry Publ. House, Beijing.<br />

Chin, H. F. 1986. The hibiscus: Queen of tropical flowers. Trop. Press, Kuala Lumpur,<br />

Malaysia.<br />

Chinn, J. F., and R. A. Criley. 1982. Plumeria cultivars in Hawaii. Hawaii Agr. Exp. Sta. Res.<br />

Bull. 158.<br />

Chmelar, J. 1983. Weeping willows. Int. Dendrol. Society Year Book 1983:107-110.<br />

Choudhary, B., and B. Singh. 1981. The international bougainvillea check list. Indian Agric.<br />

Res. Inst., New Delhi.<br />

Christl, R., and H. Fürsch. 1995. Polsterförmige Saxifragen. Gartenpraxis 21(4):12-20.<br />

Church, G. 1999. Hydrangeas. Cassell, London.<br />

Clark, T., and C. Grey-Wilson. 2003. Crown imperials. <strong>Plants</strong>man 2(1):33-47.<br />

Clarke, J. H. 1960. Getting started with rhododendrons and azaleas. Doubleday & Co., Garden<br />

City, New York.<br />

_____ . 1967. Rhododendron in<strong>for</strong>mation. Amer. Rhododendron Soc., Sherwood, Oregon.<br />

Clausen, G. 1968. Sortsafprøvning af Helianthemum 1963-66. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 71:512-<br />

517.<br />

_____ . 1969. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med vegetativt og frø<strong>for</strong>merede Viola cornuta 1965-68. Tiddsskr.<br />

Planteavl 73:434-450.<br />

_____ . 1970. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Heuchera 1964-69. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 74:111-116.<br />

_____ . 1971. Arts- og sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Veronica 1966-69. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 75:183-190.<br />

_____ . 1972a. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med japanske anemoner 1965-70. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 76:13-21.<br />

_____ . 1972b. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Erigeron 1969-71. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 76:511-518.<br />

_____ . 1973a. Forsøg med sorter af Aster amellus L., Aster dumosus L., Aster ericoides L.,<br />

Aster vimineus Lam., Aster novae-angliae L. og Aster novi-belgii L. Tiddsskr. Planteavl<br />

77:19-36.<br />

_____ . 1973b. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Trollius 1968-1972. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 77:429-438.<br />

_____ . 1973c. Sorts<strong>for</strong>síø med Aubrieta Adans. 1970-1972. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 77:587-607.<br />

_____ . 1974a. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Heliopsis 1969-71. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 78:429-434.<br />

_____ . 1974b. Arts- og sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Geranium 1971-73. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 73:441-468.<br />

_____ . 1974c. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Helianthus 1969-72. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 78:435-440.<br />

_____ . 1975. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Geum 1971-73. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 79:1-9.<br />

_____ . 1976. Sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Campanula 1970-74. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 80:443-461.


Tucker-44<br />

_____ . 1978. Arts- og sorts<strong>for</strong>søg med Sedum 1973-76. Tiddsskr. Planteavl 82:145-164.<br />

Clebsch, B. 1997. A book of salvias: Sages <strong>for</strong> every garden. Timber Press, Potland, Oregon.<br />

_____. 2003. The new book of salvias: sages <strong>for</strong> every garden. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Clemants, S.E. 1995. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera<br />

1994. HortScience 30:445.<br />

_____. 1996. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera 1995.<br />

HortScience 31:326.<br />

_____ . 1997. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera 1996.<br />

HortScience 32:586-587.<br />

_____ . 1998. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera 1997.<br />

HortScience 33:588.<br />

Clif<strong>for</strong>d, D. 1970. Pelargoniums including the popular 'geranium.' Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, London.<br />

Clifton, R. T. F. 1992. The Geraniaceae group. Geranium family species check list. Edition IV,<br />

Part 2, Geranium. Geraniaceae Group, Dover, England.<br />

_____ . 1994. Geranium family species check list. Edition IV. Part 1. Erodium. R. V. Roger,<br />

Pickering, North Yorkshire.<br />

_____ . 1995. Geranium family species check list. Edition IV. Part 2. Geranium. R. V. Roger,<br />

Pickering, North Yorkshire.<br />

Coit, J. E. 1907. A peony check-list. New York State Coll. Agric. Cornell Univ., Ithaca, New<br />

York.<br />

Collings, W. J. 1986. Supplement to named lily hybrids and their origins. North Amer. Lily<br />

Soc.<br />

Commissie voor de samenstelling van de Rassenlijst voor Bosbouwgewassen. 1990. 5 e<br />

Rassenlijst van bomen: Fifth list of approved clones and provenances of trees. Leiter-<br />

Nypels V.B., Maastricht.<br />

Commissie voor de Wetenschappelijke Benaming van Cultuurgewassen, eds. 1948. Naamlijst<br />

van siergewassen - waarin opgenomen bloemisterijgewassen, kruidachtige sierplanten<br />

voor de tuin, en het in de bloemsierkunde gebruikte plantenmateriaal. ‘s-Gravenhage,<br />

The Netherlands: Tuinbouwvoorlichtingsdienst, Staatsdrukkerij Uitgeverijbedrijf.<br />

Conard, H. S. 1905. The waterlilies. A monograph of the genus Nymphaea. Publ. Carnegie<br />

Inst. Wash. No. 4.<br />

Cooke, I. 1998. The plantfinder’s guide to tender perennials. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 2001. The gardener’s guide to growing cannas. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Cooke, I. K. S. 1995. Sweet scent of cherry pie. Garden (London) 120:495-497<br />

Coombes, A. J. 1988. Phygelius in the wild and in cultivation. <strong>Plants</strong>man 9:233-246.<br />

Coombs, R. E. 1981. Violets. Croom Helm, Kent, England.<br />

Cooper, L. 1984. The international registration of delphinium cultivar names. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1984:116-118.<br />

_____ . 1986. The international delphinium register supplement 1984-1985. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1986:63-64.<br />

_____ . 1987. The international delphinium register supplement 1985-1986. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1987:104-105.<br />

_____ . 1989. The international delphinium register supplement 1987-88. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1989:101.


Tucker-45<br />

_____ . 1990a. A plantsman's guide to delphiniums. Ward Lock, London.<br />

_____ . 1990b. The international delphinium register supplement 1988-89. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1990:107.<br />

_____ . 1991. The international delphinium register supplement 1989-90. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1991:86.<br />

_____ . 1992. The international delphinium register supplement 1990-91. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1992:77.<br />

_____ . 1993. The international delphinium register supplement 1991-92. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1993:70-71.<br />

_____ . 1994. The international delphinium register supplement 1992-93. Delphinium Soc.<br />

Yearb. 1994:77-78.<br />

Cope, E. A. 1986. Native and cultivated conifers of northeastern North America. Cornell Univ.<br />

Press, Ithaca, New York.<br />

_____ . 1998. Taxaceae: The genera and cultivated species. Bot. Rev. 64:291-322.<br />

Couttolenc, C. n.d. Lavandes ou paysages de lavandes. Jardin des lavandes, Saulte de<br />

Provence, France.<br />

Cox, P. A. 1973. Dwarf rhododendrons. Macmillan Publ. Co., New York.<br />

_____ . 1985. The smaller rhododendrons. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ , and K. Cox. 1988. Encyclopedia of rhododendron hybrids. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1990. Cox’s guide to choosing rhododendrons. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Craigmyle, M. 2002. The illustrated encyclopedia of perennials. Salamander Books, London.<br />

Cumming, R. W. 1964. The chrysanthemum book. D. Van Nostrand Co., Princeton, New<br />

Jersey.<br />

Dallimore, W., A. B. Jackson, and S. G. Harrison. 1966. A handbook of Coniferae and<br />

Gonkgoaceae. Edward Arnold, Lodnon.<br />

Darke, R. 1990. Idea garden ornamental grasses. Longwood Gardens, Kennett Square,<br />

Pennsylvania.<br />

_____ . 1991. A curator's viewpoint. HortScience 26:362-363.<br />

_____ . 1992. Trademarks, patents and cultivars. Public Gard. 6(1):30-31.<br />

_____ . 1995. Preserving the distinction between cultivars and trademarks. Acta Hort. 413:27.<br />

Darlington, C. D., J. B. Hair, and R. Hurcombe. 1951. The history of the garden hyacinths.<br />

Heredity 5:233-252.<br />

Darrah, H. H. 1980. The cultivated basils. T. E. Thomas, Independence, Missouri.<br />

Darrow, G. M., and F. G. Meyer, eds. 1968. Daylily handbook. Amer. Hort. Mag. 47:41-272.<br />

Darthuizer Boomkwekerijen B. V. 1987. Darthuizer Vademecum. Third rev. ed. Darthuizer<br />

Boomkwekerijen B. V., Leersum, Netherlands.<br />

_____ . 1994. Darthuizer Vademecum. Fourth rev. ed. Darthuizer Boomkwekerijen B. V.,<br />

Leersum, Netherlands.<br />

Dates, J. D. 1986. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of intergeneric hybrids in the tribe<br />

Gloxinaieae [Gloxinieae]. Registered Gesneriad List 1957-1986. Gesneriad Reg. [publ.<br />

with Gloxinian 36(6)].<br />

_____ . 1987. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genera<br />

Bucinellina, Columnea, Dalbergaria, Pentadenia, and Trichantha also intergeneric


Tucker-46<br />

hybrids. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 37(6)].<br />

_____ . 1988. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genus Sinningia.<br />

Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 39(1)].<br />

_____ . 1990. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genus<br />

Aeschyanthus. Gesneriad Reg. [publ. with Gloxinian 40(6)].<br />

_____ . 1993. <strong>Check</strong> list of names with descriptions of cultivated plants in the genera Episcia<br />

and Alsobia. Gesneriad Reg.<br />

_____ , and J. J. Luby. 1988. Some current options in the use of plant variety protection in<br />

horticulture. HortScience 23:15-18.<br />

Davidian, H. H. 1982. The Rhododendron species. Volume 1. Lepidotes. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1989. The Rhododendron species. Volume II. Elepidotes. Part 1. Aboreum-Lacteum.<br />

Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Davidson, C. G. 1995. Potentilla fruticosa taxonomy and international registration. Acta Hort.<br />

413:157-162.<br />

_____ , R. J. Enns, and S. Gobin. 1994. A checklist of Potentilla fruticosa: The shrubby<br />

potentilla. Agric. Agri-Food Canada – Morden Res. Sta.<br />

_____ , S. Gobin, and R. Enns. 1998. A checklist of Potentilla fruticosa. Plant Finder Ref. Libr.<br />

CD-ROM, Plant Finder, Lewes, England.<br />

_____ , and L. M. Lenz. 1989a. Experimental taxonomy of Potentilla fruticosa L. Canad. J.<br />

Bot. 67:3520-3528.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1989b. Models of inheritance of flower color and extra petals in Potentilla<br />

fruticosa L. Euphytica 45:237-246.<br />

Davies, D. 1992. Alliums: The ornamental onions. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Davis, A. P. 1999. The genus Galanthus. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

DeBaggio, T., and S. Belsinger. 1996. Basil: An herb lover’s guide. Interweave Press,<br />

Loveland, Colorado.<br />

Debor, H. W. 1978. Bibliographie des Internationalen Haselnuss-Schrifttums. Bibliogr. Reihe<br />

Techn. Univ. Berlin Vol. 10.<br />

De Jaeck, H. 1995. Magnolia hybriden. Belg. Dendrol. 1995:71-82.<br />

Dekker, J. B. A. 1988. Die Blauheiden und ihre Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 14(3):14-16.<br />

Del Tredici, P. 1987. Tsuga canadensis and its cultivars. Int. Dendrol. Society Year Book<br />

1986:99-106.<br />

den Boer, A. F. 1959. <strong>Ornamental</strong> crab apples. Amer. Assoc. Nurserymen.<br />

den Ouden, P., and B. K. Boom. 1978. Manual of cultivated conifers hardy in the cold- and<br />

warm-temperate zone. Martinus Nijhoff, The Hague.<br />

Denkewitz, L. 1989. Gefülltblühende Besenheide. Gartenpraxis 15(9):24-28.<br />

_____ . 1990. Sommerblühende Hybrid Heiden. Gartenpraxis 16(7):44-47.<br />

_____ . 1994a. Rosmarinheide. Gartenpraxis 20(9):18-22.<br />

_____ . 1994b. Zwerg<strong>for</strong>men der Besenheide. Gartenpraxis 20(12):34-37.<br />

Desportes, N. H. F. 1828. Rosetum Gallicum. Pesche, Paris.<br />

de Vos, F. 1958. Cultivated firethorns. Proc. Pl. Prop. Soc. 8:32-38.<br />

Dewitt, D., and P. W. Bosland. 1993. The pepper garden. Ten Speed Press, Berkeley,<br />

Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . , and_____ . 1996. Peppers of the world: An identification guide. Ten Speed Press,


Tucker-47<br />

Berkeley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____, and N. Gerlach. 1990. The whole pepper book. Little, Brown and Co., Boston.<br />

Dickerson, B. C. 1992. The old rose advisor. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1999. The old rose adventuer: The once-blooming old European roses, and more.<br />

Timber press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Dieterich, H. 1957. Erfahrungen mit Forsythiensorten. Deutsche Baumschule 1957(10):268-<br />

275.<br />

Dirr, M. A. 1986. Spireas of the japonica group are summer garden aristocrats. Amer.<br />

Nurseryman 163 (2):54-56, 58-61.<br />

_____ . 1987. Native amelanchiers: A sampler of northeastern species. Amer. Nurseryman<br />

166(5):66-74, 76-78, 80, 82-83.<br />

_____ . 1988. To know them is to love them: Fruited, deciduous hollies can extend color,<br />

charm and profits. Amer. Nurseryman 168(3):22-28, 32-41.<br />

_____ . 1990. Manual of woody landscape plants: Their identification, ornamental<br />

characteristics, culture, propagation and uses. Fourth ed. Stipes Publ. Co., Champaign,<br />

Illinois.<br />

_____ . 1997. Dirr’s hardy trees and shrubs: An illustrated encyclopedia.. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 2002. Dirr’s trees and shrubs <strong>for</strong> warm climates: An illustrated encyclopedia. Timber<br />

Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Dobson, B. R. 1987. Combined rose list 1987. B. R. Dobson, Irvington, New York.<br />

_____ . 1988. Combined rose list 1988. B. R. Dobson, Irvington, New York.<br />

_____ . 1989. Combined rose list 1989. B. R. Dobson, Irvington, New York.<br />

_____ . 1990. Combined rose list 1990. B. R. Dobson, Irvington, New York.<br />

_____ . 1991. Combined rose list 1991. B. R. Dobson, Irvington, New York.<br />

_____ , and P. Schneider. 1992. Combined rose list 1992. Peter Schneider, Rocky River, Ohio.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1993. Combined rose list 1993. Peter Schneider, Rocky River, Ohio.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1994. Combined rose list 1994. Peter Schneider, Mantua, Ohio.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1995. Combined rose list 1995. Peter Schneider, Mantua, Ohio.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1996. Combined rose list 1996. Peter Schneider, Mantua, Ohio.<br />

Dolatowski, J. 1986. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of mock orange cultivated in Poland. Arbor. Kórnickie 31:39-<br />

62.<br />

_____ . 1992. A note on two cultivars of horse-chestnut (Aesculus 'Digitata' and Aesculus<br />

'Laciniata'). Int. Dendrol. Society Year Book 1991:108-115.<br />

Donald, K. 1986. The Royal Horticultural Society: Its role as the International Registration<br />

Authority <strong>for</strong> Narcissus. Acta Hort. 182:381-386.<br />

Dosman, M., S. Andrews, P. Del Tredici, and J. Li. 2003. Classification and nomenclature of<br />

weeping katsuras. <strong>Plants</strong>man N.S. 2(1):21-27.<br />

Douglas, G., ed. 1949. Alphabetical iris check list. Amer. Iris Soc., Nashville.<br />

Dress, W. J. 1962. Notes on cultivated Compositae. 7. Ligularia. Baileya 10:62-87.<br />

Dudley, T. R. 1966. <strong>Ornamental</strong> madworts (Alyssum) and the correct name of the goldentuft<br />

alyssum. Arnoldia 26:33-45.<br />

_____ , and G. K. Eisenbeiss. 1971. Registration and documentaion of cultivar names.<br />

Boxwood Bull. 11:12-14.


Tucker-48<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1992. International checklist of cultivated Ilex. Part 2, Ilex crenata<br />

Thunberg ex J. A. Murray. U.S.D.A. U. S. Natl. Arbor. Contrib. No. 9.<br />

Duncan, G. c. 1998. Grow agapanthus: A guide to the species, cultivation and propagation of<br />

the genus Agapanthus. Natl. Bot. Inst., Kirstenbosch, Claremont, South Africa.<br />

Dunlop, G. 1999. Bright sparks. Crocosmia – more than merely montbretia. Garden (London)<br />

124:599-605.<br />

Durrant, T. 1982. The camellia story. Heinemann, Auckland.<br />

Dwarf Iris Society. 1975. Alphabetical checklist of miniature dwarf iris: A cumulative index of<br />

small iris. Dwarf Iris Soc., Portland, Indiana.<br />

_____ . 1988. An alphabetical checklist of miniature dwarf iris: An update of the cumulative<br />

index of small iris published 1975. Dwarf Iris Soc., Wichita, Kansas.<br />

Ecke, P., ed. 1976. The poinsettia manual. Paul Ecke Poinsettias, Encinitas, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Ecker, M. 2002. Pieris, Japanese andromeda, evaluation at The Aboretum. Dawes Arbo.<br />

Newsl. 36(6):4, 7.<br />

Edwards, C. 1989. Delphiniums: The complete guide. Crowood Press, Marlborough, England.<br />

Edwards, J. 1987. A list of named cultivars in commerce. Delphinium Soc. Yearb. 1987:106-<br />

109.<br />

Eggenberger, R. M., and M. H. Eggenberger. 1988. The handbook on Plumeria culture. 2nd<br />

ed. Plumeria People, Houston.<br />

Eggerss, M. L., and E. R. Hasselkus. 1992. The best of the winterberries. Amer. Nurseryman<br />

176(12):115-125.<br />

Eggins, L. 2000. Second chance. A favourable review of Aucuba. Garden (London) 125:22-25.<br />

Egolf, D. R. 1968. The cultivated viburnums. U.S. National Arboretum, Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ , and A. O. Andrick. 1978. The Lagerstroemia handbook/checklist: A guide to<br />

crapemyrtle cultivars. Amer. Assoc. Bot. Gard. Arbor.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1995. A checklist of Pyracantha cultivars. U. S. Natl. Arbor. Contr. No. 8.<br />

Ehsen, B., and W. Schmalscheidt. 1998. Neuere grossblumige Rhododendron auf dem<br />

Prüfstand. Pages 33-42 in Rhododendron und immergrüne Leubgehölze Jahrbuch 1998.<br />

Deutsche Rhododendron-Gesellschaft, Bremen.<br />

Eichin, R., and E. Deiser. 1988. Impatiens-Neu-Guinea-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 1988(4):14-<br />

17.<br />

Eisenbeiss, G. K., and T. R. Dudley. 1973. International checklist of cultivated Ilex. Part I. Ilex<br />

opaca. Natl. Arbor. Contr. No. 3.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1983. Ilex cultivar registration list, 1958-1983. Holly Soc. Amer. Bull. No.<br />

20.<br />

Ellerbroek, C., and J. de Vink. 1931. Rozennaamlijst. Boom- en Plantenbeurs, Boskoop.<br />

Elliott, C. 1935. Rock garden plants. Edward Arnold & Co., London.<br />

Erdman, R. P. 1949. American camellia catalog. R. P. Erdman, Savannah, Georgia.<br />

Erhardt, W. 1988a. Goldkrokus. Gartenpraxis 14(10:14-17.<br />

_____ . 1988b. Japanische Pfingstrosen. Gartenpraxis 14(5):20-25.<br />

_____ . 1992a. Hemerocallis: Day lilies. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1992b. Sonnenaugen. Gartenpraxis 18(10:8-11.<br />

_____ . 1994a. Rosa Träume. Gartenpraxis 20(5):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1994b. Sonnenblumen für kleine Gärten. Gartenpraxis 20(5):24-27.<br />

Evans, R. L. 1983. Handbook of cultivated sedums. Sci. Rev. Ltd., London.


Tucker-49<br />

Evison, R. 1985. Large-flowered clematis cultivars. Garden (London) 110:207-213.<br />

_____ . 1995. Making the most of clematis. Nottingham: Floraprint Ltd.<br />

_____ . 1998. the gardener’s guide to growing clematis. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Ewald, F. 1996. Carl Feldmaiers Lilien. Gartenpraxis 22(9):8-11.<br />

Ewart, R. 1982. Fuchsia lexicon. Van Nostrand Reinhold Co., New York.<br />

_____ . 1987. Fuchsia lexicon. Rev. ed. Bland<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Fagan, G. 1988. Roses at the Cape of Good Hope. Breestraat-Publikasies, Cape Town.<br />

Fantz, P. R. 1995. Taxonomic problems of cultivated liriopogons. Acta Hort. 213:153-156.<br />

_____ , R. J. Rouse, and T. E. Bilderback. 1999. <strong>Cultivar</strong>-groups in Japanese cedar<br />

(Cryptomeria japonica). Pages 325-334 in S. Andrews, A. Leslie, and C. Alexander.<br />

Taxonomy of cultivated plants: Third international symposium. Roy. Bot. Gard., Kew.<br />

Fearnley-Whittingstall, J. 1992. Ivies. Random House, New York.<br />

_____ . 1999. Peonies. Harry N. Abrams, New York.<br />

Feathers, D. L., and M. H. Brown, eds. 1978. The camellia: Its history, culture, genetics and a<br />

look into its future development. Amer. Camellia Soc.<br />

Fiala, J. L. 1988. Lilacs: The genus Syringa. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1994. Flowering crabapples. The genus Malus. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Fisher, E. V. 1978. Named lily hybrids and their origins. ed. J. Montgomery. North Amer. Lily<br />

Soc.<br />

_____ . 1979. Hosta: The aristocratic plant <strong>for</strong> shady gardens. Amer. Hosta Soc.<br />

Fisher, S. N., Lt. Col. & Mrs., and Mr. & Mrs. Robert Ellis. 1975. Gladiolus variety<br />

parentages. 1975 Revised edition. North Amer. Gladiolus Council.<br />

_____ . c. 1983. Gladiolus variety parentages. North Amer. Glaciolus Council.<br />

Flannery, H. B. 1982. A study of the taxa of Thymus L. (Labiatae) cultivated in the United<br />

States. Ph.D. Thesis. Cornell Univ., Ithaca, New York.<br />

Fleming, R. 1979. Hybrid Nepenthes. Carnivorous Pl. Newslett. 8:10-12.<br />

Flecken, J. G. 1998. Calluna vulgaris – Struikheide (zg. Knopbloeiers). Dendroflora 35:24-33.<br />

Fletcher, H. R. 1958. The international rhododendron register. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

Fogg, J. M., and J. C. McDaniel. 1975. <strong>Check</strong> list of the cultivated magnolias. Amer. Hort.<br />

Soc., Mt. Vernon, Virginia.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1994. <strong>Check</strong> list of the cultivated magnolias. Rev. ed. Amer. Hort. Soc.,<br />

Gibson, Tennessee.<br />

Fontaine, F. J. 1968. Ulmus; Keuringsrapport van de Regelingskommissie Sierbomen<br />

N.A.K.B. Dendroflora 5:36-55.<br />

_____ . 1970a. Het geslacht Betula. Meded. Bot. Tuinen Belmonte Arbor. Wageningen 13:99-<br />

180.<br />

_____ . 1970b. Styrax, Pterostyras, Halesia. Dendroflora 7:63-68.<br />

_____ . 1970c. Zelkova. Dendroflora 7:82-84.<br />

Foreman, J. J. 1985. Spuria irises: Introduction and varietal listing. James J. Foreman.<br />

Frank, H. 1975. African violet miniature and semiminiature variety list. Fourth ed.<br />

Classification supplement __ 1976, 1977. African Violet Soc. Amer.<br />

Fretwell, B. 1989. Clematis. Capability's Books, Deer Park, Wisconsin.<br />

Fritchie, C. 1982. Louisiana iris cultivars. Soc. Louisiana Irises.<br />

Fryer, J. 1996. Undervalued versatility. Garden (London) 121:709-715.


Tucker-50<br />

Fuchs, H. 1992a. Adonis amurensis: Gelbe Blüten in Vorfrühling. Gartenpraxis 18(1):8-10.<br />

_____ . 1992b. Der Blutrote Storchschnabel. Gartenpraxis 18(10):16-17.<br />

_____ . 1994a. Phlox. Stauden- und Polsterphloxe. Stuttgart: Eugen Ulmer.<br />

_____ . 1994b. Schätze im Phlox-paniculata-Sortiment. Gartenpraxis 20(7):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1994c. Unbekannter Wiesenphlox. Gartenpraxis 20(8):49-51.<br />

Fuller, R. 1990. Pansies, violas & violettas: The complete guide. Crowood Press,<br />

Marlborough, England.<br />

_____ . 1994. Violas and violettas. HarperCollins, London.<br />

Furthmair, K. 1996. Bewährte Stauden-margeriten. Gartenpraxis 22(7):15-19.<br />

Galle, F. C. 1985. Azaleas. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1997. Hollies: The genus Ilex. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Gardiner, J. M. 1989. Magnolias. Globe Pequot Press, Chester, Connecticut.<br />

Gault, S. M., and P. M. Synge. 1971. The dictionary of roses in color. Grosset and Dunlap,<br />

New York.<br />

Gelderen, D. M. van. 1971. Ilex. Dendroflora 8:19-35.<br />

_____ . 1975. Picea en Abies; Treur- en Kruipvormen. Dendroflora 11/12:38-45.<br />

_____ . 1979. Pieris. Dendroflora 15/16:36-44.<br />

_____ . 1982. Pinus. Dendroflora 19:3-28.<br />

_____ . 1984. Juniperus; breed en plat groeiende cultivars. Dendroflora 21:2-38.<br />

_____ . 1988a. Ilex aquifolium en Ilex × altaclerensis. Dendroflora 25:7-34.<br />

_____ . 1988b. Neue Blütenhartriegel. Gartenpraxis 14(1):8-13.<br />

_____ . 1989. Spiraea im Garten. Gartenpraxis 15(8):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1990. Blütensträucher mit und ohne Schneeball. Gratenpraxis 16(8):22-24.<br />

_____ . 1992. Winterharte Ceanothus? Gartenpraxis 19(8):22-24.<br />

_____ . 1997a. Ilex crenata. Gartenpraxis 23(3):24-27.<br />

_____ . 1997b. Enkianthus. Dendroflora 34:24-33.<br />

_____ . 1998. Andromeda – Rotsheide. Dendroflora 35:19-23.<br />

_____ . 1999. Osmanthus: een overzicht van het sortiment. Dendroflora 36:68-75.<br />

_____ . 2000. Hydrangea paniculata – een overzicht van het sortiment. Dendroflora 37:20-30.<br />

_____ , P. C. de Jong, and H. J. Oterdoom. 1994. Maples of the world. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

_____ , and D. M. van Gelderen. 1999. Maples <strong>for</strong> gardens: a Color encyclopedia. Timber<br />

Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ , and J. R. P. van Hoey Smith. 1986. Conifers. Timber Press, Porland, Oregon.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1992. Rhododendron portraits. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Genders, R. 1956. Anemones. Faber and Faber, London.<br />

_____ . 1961a. Miniature chrysanthemums and Koreans. St. Martin's Press, New York.<br />

_____ . 1961b. Gladioli and the miniatures. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, London.<br />

_____ . 1962a. Primroses. St. Martin's Press, New York.<br />

_____ . 1962b. Garden pinks. John Gif<strong>for</strong>d Ltd., London.<br />

_____ . 1963a. Delphiniums. John Gif<strong>for</strong>d, London.


Tucker-51<br />

_____ . 1963b. The polyanthus. Faber and Faber, London.<br />

Gerbing, G. G. 1945. Camellias. Series 2 loose leaf binder. G. G. Gerbing.<br />

Gerhold, H. D., W. N. Wandell, N. L. Lacasse, and R. D. Schein, eds. 1989. Street tree<br />

factsheets. Pennsylvania State Univ., University Park.<br />

Gibbs, V. 1929. Robinias at Aldenham and Kew. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 54:145-158.<br />

Gillis, W. T. 1976. Bougainvilleas of cultivation [Nyctaginaceae]. Baileya 20:34-41.<br />

Gilmour, J. S. L., J. Greatwood, and P. F. Hunt. 1976. Handbook on orchid nomenclature and<br />

registration. Intern. Orchid Commiss., Amer. Orchid Soc., Cambridge, Massachusetts.<br />

Gilsenan, F., ed. 1994. A-Z of perennials. Reader’s Dig. Assoc., Pleasantville, New York.<br />

Gioia, V. G. 1986. Revised rose name registration system. Acta Hort. 182:265-271.<br />

_____ . 1995. Using and registering plant names as trademarks. Acta Hort. 413:19-25.<br />

Good, W. 1996a. Päonien: Itoh-Hybriden oder Intersectionals. Gartenpraxis 22(1):8-15.<br />

_____ . 1996b. Paeonia-lutea-Hybriden von Nassos Daphnis (I). Gartenpraxis 22(12):14-18.<br />

_____ . 1997. Paeonia-lutea-Hybriden von Nassos Daphnis (II). Gartenpraxis 23(1):12-17.<br />

Goodwin, F. H. 1986. The control of plant variety rights. Pages 375-383 in B. T. Styles, ed.<br />

Infraspecific classification of wild and cultivated plants. Clarendon Press, Ox<strong>for</strong>d.<br />

Gordon, D., ed. 1996. The Aril Society International official checklist 1996 covering cultivars<br />

registered from 1800 through 1995. Aril Soc. Intern.<br />

Gosling, S. G. 1964. British national register of names of chrysanthemums. Third ed. National<br />

Chrysanthemum Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1973a. The pocket encyclopedia of chrysanthemums. Arco Publ. Co., New York.<br />

_____ . 1973b. British national register of names of chrysanthemums. Supplementary edition<br />

1964-1972. National Chrysanthemum Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1980. British national register of names of chrysanthemums.. Amalgamated edition<br />

1964-1979. National Chrysanthemum Soc., London.<br />

Gottschalk, M. 19991. Alte und neue Hybriden der Passionblumen. Gartenpraxis 17(1):46-51.<br />

Goudey, C. J. 1985. Maidenhair ferns in cultivation. Lothian Publ. Co., Portland, Oregon.<br />

Goulding, E. 1995. Fuchsias: The complete guide. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Graf, A. B. 1978. Tropica. First ed. Roehrs Co., East Ruther<strong>for</strong>d, New Jersey.<br />

_____ . 1986a. Exotica international. Series 4, 12th ed. Roehers Co., East Ruther<strong>for</strong>d, New<br />

Jersey.<br />

_____ . 1986b. Tropica. Third ed. Roehrs Co., East Ruther<strong>for</strong>d, New Jersey.<br />

Grant, M. 2000. Sea hollies show their mettle. Highlights of the RHS trial of Eryngium.<br />

Garden (London) 125:534-539.<br />

Gravereaux, J. 1902. Les roses cultivées à l'Haÿ en 1902. Paris.<br />

Green, P. S. 1963. Leucothoë fontanesiana. Arnoldia 23:93-99.<br />

_____ . 1964. Registration of cultivar names in Ulmus. Arnoldia 24:41-80.<br />

_____ . 1965. Studies in the genus Jasminum III. The species in cultivation in North America.<br />

Baileya 13:137-172.<br />

Greer, H. E. 1982. Greer's guidebook to available rhododendrons. Offshoot Publ., Eugene,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Greenlee, J. 2000. The encyclopedia of ornamental grasses. Rodale Press, Emmaus,<br />

Pennsylvania.<br />

Grenfell, D. 1986. Some comments on Dr. Hensen's study of the taxonomy of cultivated<br />

hostas. <strong>Plants</strong>man 7:251-255.


Tucker-52<br />

_____ . 1990. Hosta: The flowering foliage plant. B. T. Bats<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

_____ . 1996. The gardener’s guide to growing hostas. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1998. The gardener’s guide to growing daylilies. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Greuter, W., ed. 1988. International code of botanical nomenclature. Koeltz Scientific Books,<br />

Königstein, Federal Republic of Germany.<br />

Grey-Wilson, C. 1988. The genus Cyclamen. Roy. Bot. Gard., Kew.<br />

_____ . 1993. Poppies: A guide to the poppy family in the wild and in cultivation. B. T.<br />

Bats<strong>for</strong>d Ltd., London.<br />

_____ . 2000. Clematis: The genus. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Griffiths, T. 1984. The book of old roses. Michael Joseph, London.<br />

_____ . 1987. The book of classic old roses. Michael Joseph, London.<br />

Grimm, H. 1997. Alte und neue Rugosa-kreuzungen. Gartenpraxis 23(6):8-12.<br />

Gromov, A. 1963. Siren' [in Russian]. Moskovskii Rabochii, Moscow.<br />

Grootendorst, H. J. 1954. Rhodendrons en Azalea's. Vereniging voor Boskoopse Culturen.<br />

_____ . 1964a. Malus - Sierappels. Dendroflora 1:2-15.<br />

_____ . 1964b. Prunus; sierkersen; het sierkersen sortiment. Dendroflora 1:16-31.<br />

_____ . 1965. Hamamelis. Dendroflora 2:11-17.<br />

_____ . 1966a. Laag groeiende cotoneasters. Dendroflora 3:20-27.<br />

_____ . 1966b. Fraxinus; Keuringsrapport van de Regelingscommissie Sierbomen. N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 3:28-36.<br />

_____ . 1967a. Aesculus; Keuringsrapport van de Regelingscommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 4:2-9.<br />

_____ . 1967b. Bladverliezende Azalea's. Dendroflora 4:10-17, ill. opposite pp. 9, 16, 17, 56,<br />

57.<br />

_____ . 1967c. Crataegus; Keuringsrapport van de Regelingscommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 4:18-29.<br />

_____ . 1968a. Chaenomeles. Dendroflora 5:13-19.<br />

_____ . 1968b. Hibiscus syriacus. Dendroflora 5:23-28.<br />

_____ . 1968c. Juniperus communis; opgaande vormen. Dendroflora 5:29-34.<br />

_____ 1968c. Weigela. Dendroflora 5:56-60, ill. opp. pp. 64, 65.<br />

_____ . 1968d. Wisteria. Dendroflora 5:61-68.<br />

_____ . 1969a. Acer; Keuringsrapport van de Regelingskommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 6:3-18.<br />

_____ . 1969b. Japanse Azalea's. Dendroflora 6:37-43.<br />

_____ . 1969c. Rhododendron tuinhybriden. Dendroflora 6:57-66.<br />

_____ . 1970. Tilia; Keuringsrapport van de Regelingskommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 7:69-81.<br />

_____ . 1971a. Robinia; Keuringsrapport van de Keuringscommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 8:46-57.<br />

_____ . 1971b. Thuja occidentalis - bolvormen. Dendroflora 8:58-59.<br />

_____ . 1972a. Alnus; Keuringsrapport van de Regelingskommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 9:2-8.


Tucker-53<br />

_____ . 1972b. Buddleia. Dendroflora 9:38-42.<br />

_____ . 1973a. Betula; Keuringsrapport van de Keuringscommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 10:15-25.<br />

_____ . 1973b. Hydrangea. Dendroflora 10:26-40.<br />

_____ . 1975. Fagus. Dendroflora 11/12:3-17.<br />

_____ . 1977. Spiraea. Dendroflora 13/14:50-61.<br />

_____ . 1979a. Rhododendron williamsianum hybriden. Dendroflora 15/16:45-49.<br />

_____ . 1979b. Viburnum plicatum en de cultuur-variëteiten. Groen 35:361-362.<br />

_____ . 1980a. Hamamelis; Keuringsrapport. Dendroflora 17:9-17.<br />

_____ . 1980b. Quercus; Keuringsrapport van de Keuringscommissie Sierbomen N.A.K.B.<br />

Dendroflora 17:24-33.<br />

Grosvenor, G. 1997. Iris: Flower of the rainbow. Kangaroo Press, Kenthurst, Australia.<br />

_____ . 1999. Daylilies <strong>for</strong> the garden. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Grounds, R. 1979. <strong>Ornamental</strong> grasses. Van Nostrand Reinhold Co., New York.<br />

_____ . 2002. Trial of a supergrass. Garden (London) 127:794-801.<br />

Grove, D. L. 1995. Vandas and associates and their combinations with other genera. Timber<br />

Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Grunert, C. 1982. Gartenblumen von A bis Z. Neumann Verlag, Leipzig.<br />

Hachmann, H., P. Kiermeier, H. Reif, W. Schmalscheidt, H. Schwarz, H. D. Warda, and Chr.<br />

Zorn. 1986a. Gehölzsichtung. Ergebnisse der Sichtungsprüfungen bei Potentilla -<br />

niedrigwachsende Arten - 1980-1985. Bund deutscher Baumschulen (BdB) e.V.<br />

Pinneberg; Bundessortenamt, Hannover.<br />

_____ , _____ , _____ , _____ , _____ , _____ , and _____ . 1986b. Gehölzsichtung. Ergebnisse<br />

der Sichtungsprüfungen bei Pyracantha - niedrigwachsende Arten - 1980-1985. Bund<br />

deutscher Baumschulen (BdB) e.V. Pinneberg; Bundessortenamt, Hannover.<br />

_____ , _____ , _____ , _____ , _____ , _____ , and _____ . 1987. Gehölzsichtung. Ergebnisse der<br />

Sichtungsprüfungen bei Cotoneaster - niedrigwachsende Arten - 1980-1986. Bund<br />

deutscher Baumschulen (BdB) e.V. Pinneberg; Bundessortenamt, Hannover.<br />

Haegeman, J. 1978. International list of tuberous begonia names. Rijksstation voor<br />

Sierplantenteelt, Melle, Belgium.<br />

_____ . 1979. Tuberous begonias: Origin and development. J. Cramer, Vaduz.<br />

Hagan, A. K., J. R. Akridge, K. L. Bowen, J. W. Olive, and K. M. Tilt. 2001. Resistance of<br />

selected cultivars of Indian hawthorn to entomosporium leaf spot, fireblight, and<br />

anthracnose in Alabama. J. Environ. Hort. 19:43-46.<br />

Halfacre, R. G., and A. R. Shawcroft. 1989. Landscape plants of the southeast. Fifth ed.<br />

Sparks Press, Raleigh, North Carolina.<br />

Hall, A. D. 1928. The book of the tulip. Frederick A. Stokes Co., New York.<br />

Hammer, S. A. 1999. Lithops – Treasures of the Veld (Observations on the genus Lithops<br />

N.E.Br.). British Cactus and Succulent Soc., Ansty, England.<br />

Hannibal, L. S. 1970-71. Garden crinums: An identification and checklist of crinums found in<br />

the United States. Bull. Louisiana Soc. Hort. Res. 3:220-322.<br />

Hansell, D. E., T. R. Dudley, and G. K. Eisenbeiss, eds. 1970. Handbook on hollies. Amer.<br />

Hort. Mag. 49:149-334.<br />

Hansen, H. V., and J. P. Hjerting. 2000. The early history of the domestication of Dahlia


Tucker-54<br />

(Asteraceae, Heliantheae) with emphasis on the period 1791-1836. Bot. Gard., Univ.<br />

Copenhagen.<br />

Hansen, R., and J. Sieber. 1970. Die Sichtung des Heuchera-Sortimentes. Deutsche<br />

Gärtnerbörse 26:635-637.<br />

Hanson, B., ed. 1999. Chile peppers: Hot tips and tasty pickes <strong>for</strong> gardeners and gourmets.<br />

Brooklyn Bot. Gard. Handb. #161.<br />

Harbaugh, B.K., M. L. Bell, and R. Liang. 2000. Evaluation of <strong>for</strong>ty-seven cultivars of<br />

lisianthus as cut flowers. HortTechnology 10:812-815.<br />

Harding, A. 1933. Lilacs in my garden: A practical handbook <strong>for</strong> amateurs. Macmillan Co.,<br />

New York.<br />

Harding, W. 1992. Saxifrages: A gardener’s guide to the genus. Alpine Gard. Soc., Pershore,<br />

England.<br />

Harding, Mrs. E. 1917. The book of the peony. J. B. Lippincott Co., Philadelphia.<br />

Haring, P. A., ed. 1986. Modern roses 9. Amer. Rose Soc., Shreveport, Louisiana.<br />

Harkness, M. G., and D. D'Angelo. 1986. The Bernard E. Harkness seedlist handbook: A guide<br />

to the plants offered in the major plant societies' seed exchanges. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

Harkness, P. 1991. The photographic encyclopedia of roses. Gallery Books, New York.<br />

Harp, H. F. 1975. Lythrums <strong>for</strong> home gardens. Canad. Dep. Agric. Publ. 1285.<br />

Harper, P. J. 1999. The greater pleasures of lesser celandines. Horticulture 96(3):32-34.<br />

Harris, G. 1982. Japanese maples. <strong>Plants</strong>man 3:234-250.<br />

Harris, J. 2000. The gardener’s guide to growing maples. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Harris, J. G. S. 1983. An account of maples in cultivation. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5:35-58.<br />

Harrison, C. R. 1975. <strong>Ornamental</strong> conifers. Hafner Press, New York.<br />

Hartlage, R. W. 1999. Dogwoods. Horticulture 96(3):58-61.<br />

Harvey, G. 1988. Official nomenclature list. Austral. Hibiscus Soc., Buderim, Queensland.<br />

Haselton, S. E. 1951. Epipyllum handbook. Abbey Gard. Press, Pasadena, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Haserodt, H., and T. D. Sydnor. 1983. Growth habits of five cultivars of Gleditsia triacanthos.<br />

J. Arbor. 9:186-189.<br />

Hashizume, T. c. 1982-1985. Epiphyllums and other related genera. Japan.<br />

Hatch, L. 1982. Nomenclatural analysis of the variegated Hibernicas. Amer. Ivy Soc., West<br />

Carrollton, Ohio.<br />

_____ . 1986. Reference guide to the ornamental plant cultivars. Taxonomic Computer Res.,<br />

Raleigh, North Carolina.<br />

Haw, S. G. 2001. Tree peonies: A review of their history and taxonomy. New <strong>Plants</strong>man<br />

8:156-171.<br />

Hawke, R. G. 1991. Per<strong>for</strong>mance appraisal of selected small-leaved rhododendrons. Pl. Eval.<br />

Notes. No. 1.<br />

_____ . 1992. A bambook per<strong>for</strong>mance report. Pl. Eval. Notes No. 3.<br />

_____ . 1994a. Evaluation of Hibiscus moscheutos cultivars and horticultural hybrids.<br />

Perennial Pl. 2(2):18-21.<br />

_____ . 1994b. A per<strong>for</strong>mance report of cultivated yarrows (Achillea). Pl. Eval. Notes No. 5.<br />

_____ . 1994c. Boxwoods <strong>for</strong> North Midwest landscapes. Pl. Eval. Notes No. 6.<br />

_____ . 1996. A per<strong>for</strong>mance report of cultivated blazing stars. Pl. Eval. Notes No. 9.<br />

_____ . 1997a. Clematis <strong>for</strong> northern landscapes. Pl. Eval. Notes No. 10.<br />

_____ . 1997b. An evaluation report of shrub roses. Pl. Eval. Notes No. 11.


Tucker-55<br />

_____ . 1998. Monarda and powerdy mildew resistance. Pl. Eval. Notes. No. 12.<br />

_____ . 1999. An evaluation report of selected Phlox species and hybrids. Pl. Eval. Notes No.<br />

13.<br />

_____ . 2000. An evaluation report of goldenrods <strong>for</strong> the garden. Pl. Eval. Notes. No. 15.<br />

_____ . 2001a. An avaluation study of Tricyrtis. Pl. Eval. Notes No. 16.<br />

_____ . 2001b. An appraisal of Pulmonaria <strong>for</strong> the garden. Pl. Eval. Notes. No. 17.<br />

_____ . 2003. Garden-worthy artemisias. Pl. Eval. Notes. NO. 19.<br />

Haworth-Booth, M. 1963. The moutan or tree peony. St. Martin's Press, New York.<br />

_____ . 1984. The hydrangeas. 5th rev. ed. Constable, London.<br />

Hawthorn, L. 1999. Rhododendrons. Lorenz Books, London.<br />

Hay, R., and P. M. Synge. 1969. The color dictionary of flowers and palnts <strong>for</strong> home and<br />

garden. Crown Publ., New York.<br />

Haysom, C. G. 1957. Florists' auriculas and gold-laced polyanthus. W. H. & L. Collingridge,<br />

London.<br />

Hebb, R. S. 1971. The story of <strong>for</strong>sythia. Arnoldia 31:41-63.<br />

Hecker, W. R. 1971. Auriculas and primroses. B. T. Bats<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Heenan, P. B. 1991. <strong>Check</strong>list of Phormium cultivars. Roy. New Zealand Inst. Hort.,<br />

Canterbury.<br />

Heger, K., and K. H. Hübbers. 1998. Kalmien Sorten. Pages 43-47 in Rhododendron und<br />

immergrüne Laubgehölze Jahrbuch 1998. Deutsche Rhododendron-Gesellschaft,<br />

Bremen.<br />

Heieck, I. 1980. Hedera Sorten, ihre Entstehung und Geschichte dargestellt am Sortiment der<br />

Gärtnerei Abtei Neuburg. Garry Grüber, Baiertal, Federal Republic of Germany.<br />

_____ . 1991. Ausländische Efeuarten. Gartenpraxis 17(1):24-29.<br />

Henkel, F., F. Rehnelt, and L. Dittmann. 1907. Das Buch der Nymphaeaceen oder<br />

Seerosengewächse. Friedrich Henkel, Darmstadt.<br />

Hensen, K. J. W. 1959. Het Trollius-sortiment. Tuinbouwgids 1959:535-539.<br />

_____ . 1963a. Identification of the Hostas ("Funkias") introduced and cultivated by von<br />

Siebold. Meded. Landbouwhogeschool 63(6):1-22.<br />

_____ . 1963b. Preliminary registration lists of cultivar names in Hosta Tratt. Meded.<br />

Landbouwhogeschool 63(7):1-12.<br />

_____ . 1966. Het in Nederland gekweekte Erigeronsortiment. Beplantingen Boomkwekerij<br />

22:131-134.<br />

_____ . 1968. De in Nederland gekweekte Japanese anemonen. Beplantingen Boomkwekerij<br />

24:127-134.<br />

_____ . 1969. Het in Nederland gekweekte Astilbe sortiment. Beplantingen Boomkwekerij<br />

25:106-112.<br />

_____ . 1970 Het Sorbus latifolia-complex. Meded. Bot. Tuinen Belmonte Arbor. Wageningen<br />

13:181-194.<br />

_____ . 1974. Het Lavandula-sortiment. Groen 30:184-190.<br />

_____ . 1976. Onderzoek en keuring van het Aubrieta-sortiment. Groen 32:184-194.<br />

_____ . 1979. Voortgezet onderzoek van het sortiment Japanse Anemonen. Groen 35:363-370.<br />

_____ . 1980. Taxonomie en nomenclatuur van het Vincasortiment. Groen 36:187-194.


Tucker-56<br />

_____ . 1981. Het onderzoek van het sortiment Grasanjers (Dianthus gratianopolitanus en<br />

plumarius). Groen 37:265-277.<br />

_____ . 1983a. Some nomenclatural problems in Hosta. Bull. Amer. Hosta Soc. 14:41-45.<br />

_____ . 1983b. Het onderzoek van het Heliopsis sortiment. Groen 39:265-270.<br />

_____ . 1985. A study of the taxonomy of cultivated hostas. <strong>Plants</strong>man 7:1-35.<br />

_____ , and N. Groendijk-Wilders. 1986a. An account of some sedums cultivated in Europe.<br />

<strong>Plants</strong>man 8:1-20.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1986b. Siergrassen (Gramineae, Cyperaceae en Juncaceae). Dendroflora<br />

23:55-85.<br />

Herrmann, W. 1998. Neues im Busch. Gartenpraxis 24(2):44-47.<br />

Hertle, F. 1997. Paeonia-Lutea-Hybriden von Prof. Saunders. Gartenpraxis 23(12):8-13.<br />

_____ . 2001. New registered cultivars of hardy perennials. Pages 86-94 in Jahrbuch 2000.<br />

International Hardy Plant Union.<br />

Hertrich, W. 1954-1959. Camellias in the Huntington Garden. Huntington Bot. Gard., San<br />

Marino, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Hetterscheid, W. L. A., and R. G. van den Berg. 1996. Cultonomy of Aster L. Acta Bot. Neerl.<br />

45:173-181.<br />

Hibberd, D. 1994. Hardy geraniums. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

Hill, L., and N. Hill. 1991. Daylilies: The perfect perennial. Storey Commun., Pownal,<br />

Vermont.<br />

Hillier, H. G. 1982. The Hillier colour dictionary of trees and shrubs. Van Nostrand Reinhold<br />

Co., New York.<br />

_____ . 1991. The Hillier manual of trees and shrubs. Sixth ed. David & Charles, London.<br />

Hilton, R. J. 1982. Registration of Amelanchier cultivar names. Fruit Var. J. 36(4):108-110.<br />

_____ . 1984. Amelanchier cultivar addenda. Fruit Var. J. 38(4):165.<br />

Hinkley, D. J. 1999. <strong>Ornamental</strong> rhubarbs. Horticulture 96(30:54-57.<br />

Hodgkin, E. 1961. Daphnes. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 86:481-488.<br />

Hodgson, R. W. 1967. Horticultural varieties of Citrus, p. 431-591. In: W. Reuther, H. J.<br />

Webber, and L. D. Batchelor (eds.). The citrus industry. Vol. 1. Rev. ed. Univ.<br />

Cali<strong>for</strong>nia Press, Berkeley.<br />

Hoey Smith, J. R. P. van. 1976. The evaluation of Fagus sylvatica cultivars in Holland. Int.<br />

Dendrol. Society Year Book 1975:40-49.<br />

_____ . 1998. Fagus – Beuk (Introducties van het Arboretum Trompenburg). Dendroflora 35:4-<br />

44.<br />

Hoffman, M. H. A. 1996. <strong>Cultivar</strong> classification of Philadelphus L. (Hydrangeaceae). Acta<br />

Bot. Neerl. 45:199-209.<br />

_____. 1997. Rhododendron: (Keuringsrapport) Geelbloeiende cultivars. Dendroflora 34:93-<br />

103.<br />

_____ . 1998. Viburnum plicatum (Keuringsrapport). Dendroflora 35:136-148.<br />

_____ . 1999a. Monarda: Sortimensonderzoek en keuringsrapport. Dendroflora 36:48-67.<br />

_____ . 1999b. <strong>Cultivar</strong> classification of Philadelphus L. Pages 413-414 in S. Andrews, A. C.<br />

Leslie, and C. Alexander, eds. Taxonomy of cultivated plants. Roy. Bot. Gard., Kew.<br />

_____ . 2000a. Mahonia × media en verwanten – sortimentsonderzoek en keuringsrapport.<br />

Dendroflora 37:31-40.


Tucker-57<br />

_____ . 2000b. Syringa vulgaris – sortimentsonderzoek. Dendroflora 37:60-95.<br />

_____ . 2001. Nepeta – sortimentsonderzoek en keuringsrapport. Dendroflora 38:88-113.<br />

Hogan, E. L., ed. 1988. Sunset western garden book. Lane Publ Co., Menlo Park, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Holst, A. W. 1999. The world of catasetums. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Holttum, R. E. 1938. The cultivated bouganvilleas. Gard. Chron. ser. 3, 103:164-165.<br />

Hoog, M. N. 1980. Bulbous irises. <strong>Plants</strong>man 2:141-164.<br />

Hop, M. E. C. M. 1999. Aronia: Appelbes (deel 2). Dendroflora 36:40-47.<br />

_____ . 2001a. Heftsbloeiende Anemone – sortimentsonderzoek en keuringsrapport.<br />

Dendroflora 38:13-37.<br />

_____ . 2001b. Volwassen en struikvornige Hedera – sortimentsonderzoek en keuringsrapport.<br />

Dendroflora 38:70-87.<br />

Hornback, B. 1994. New New Zealand flaxes. Pacific Hort. 55(3):33-40.<br />

Horný, R., K. M. Webr, and J. Byam-Grounds. 1986. Porophyllum saxifrages. Stam<strong>for</strong>d,<br />

England.<br />

Horobin, J. F. 1985. Schlumbergera. <strong>Plants</strong>man 7:53-63.<br />

Horsman, J. 1984. Silver firs in cultivation. <strong>Plants</strong>man 6:65-100.<br />

Hörsch, W. 1994. Clematis viticella und ihre Sorten. Gartenpraxis 20(6):14-19.<br />

Hottes, A. C. 1916. Gladiolus studies __ III. Varieties of the garden gladiolus. Cornell Extens.<br />

Bull. 11.<br />

Houtman, R. T. 1998. Viburnum (m.u.v. Viburnum plicatum et cv’s) (Keuringsrapport).<br />

Dendroflora 35:96-135.<br />

Houtzagers, G. 1938. Eerste beschrijvende rassenlijst voor populieren. Nederlandse Algemene<br />

Keuringsdienst.<br />

_____ . 1947. Tweede beschrijvende rassenlijst voor populieren, wilgen en iepen. Inst.<br />

Veredeling Tuinbouwgewassen, Wageningen.<br />

Howard, R. A. 1961. Registration lists of cultivar names in Cornus L. Arnoldia 21:9-18.<br />

_____ . 1965. A check list of cultivar names in Weigela. Arnoldia 25:49-69.<br />

_____ . 1969. A check list of cultivar names used in the genus Lantana. Arnoldia 29:73-109.<br />

Howe, C. 1984. Five 1984 Forsythia introductions. Amer. Nurseryman 159(9):167-168, 170-<br />

173.<br />

Howie, J. 1980. Hibiscus: Queen of the flowers. Nomenclature. James Malcolm Howie,<br />

Brisbane, Australia.<br />

Hu, Shiu-ying. 1954-1956. A monograph of the genus Philadelphus. J. Arnold Arbor. 35:275-<br />

333; 36:52-109, 325-368; 37:15-90.<br />

Hume, H. H. 1955. Camellias in America. Rev. ed. J. Horace McFarland Co., Harrisburg,<br />

Pennsylvania.<br />

_____ . 1961. The Ophiopogon-Liriope complex. Baileya 9:134-158.<br />

Hunt, D., ed. 1998. Magnolias and their allies: Proceedings of an international symposium,<br />

Royal Holloway, University of London, Egham, Surrey, U.K., 12-13 April 1996. Intern.<br />

Dendrology Soc. and Magnolia Soc.<br />

Hunt, P. F. 1986. The nomenclature and registration of orchid hybrids at specific and generic<br />

levels. Pages 367-374 in B. T. Styles, ed. Infraspecific classification of wild and<br />

cultivated plants. Clarendon Press, Ox<strong>for</strong>d.<br />

_____ . 1995. In<strong>for</strong>mation technology in orchid grex registration. Acta Hort. 413:13-18.<br />

Huntington Botanical Gardens. 2001. Camellias: A curator’s introduction to the camellia


Tucker-58<br />

collection in the Huntington Botanical Gardens. Huntington Bot. Gard., San Marino,<br />

Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Hurka, W. 1990. Neue Fuchsiensorten. Gartenpraxis 16(3):48-49.<br />

Huttleston, D. G. 1986. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration of unassigned woody ornamentals. HortScience<br />

21:361-366.<br />

_____ . 1988. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration of unassigned woody ornamentals. HortScience 23:454-456.<br />

_____ . 1989. International registrations of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera.<br />

HortScience 24:430-432.<br />

_____ . 1990. International registrations of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera.<br />

HortScience 25:616-617.<br />

_____ . 1991. International registrations of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera.<br />

HortScience 26:475-476.<br />

_____ . 1992. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera 1991.<br />

HortScience 27:302.<br />

_____ . 1993. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera 1992.<br />

HortScience 28:278-279.<br />

Hyatt, B. 1989. Auriculas. Cassell, London.<br />

_____ . 1992. Primroses and auriculas. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

Ingwersen, W. 1986. Ingwersen’s manual of alpine plants. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Ievinya, S. O., and M. A. Lusinya. 1975. Astil'by. Izdatal'stvo Zinatne, Riga.<br />

Ihei, I. 1984. A brocade pillow: Azaleas of Old Japan. Weatherhill, New York.<br />

Ilsink, L. K. J. 1988. Dendrologische notities. Hydrangea paniculata en de cultivars. Groen<br />

44(10):36-37.<br />

_____ , and P. C. de Jong. 1986. Het geslacht Euonymus. II. De groenblijvende soorten. Groen<br />

42(1):23-27.<br />

Ingles, J. 1990. American Begonia Society listing of begonia cultivars. Rev. ed. Buxton check<br />

list. Amer. Begonia Soc.<br />

Ingram, C. 1948. <strong>Ornamental</strong> cherries. Country Life, London.<br />

Ingram, J. 1963. Studies in the cultivated Ericaceae. 3. Andromeda. 4. Pieris. Baileya 11:37-<br />

46.<br />

Innes, C., and C. Glass. 1999. The illustrated encyclopedia of cacti. Quantum Books, London.<br />

International Poplar Commission. 1971. Registration of poplar names. Food & Agric. Organ.<br />

United Nations FO:CIP/71/30.<br />

_____ . 1990. Catalogue international des cultivars de peupliers. Food & Agric. Organ. United<br />

Nations FA:CIP:Catalogue/90.<br />

Isaacson, R. T. 1996. Andersen Horticultural Library's source list of plants and seeds. Fourth<br />

ed. Anderson Hort. Libr., Chanhassen, Minnesota. (updates available on line by<br />

subscription at http://www.arboretum.umn.edu/).<br />

Jacobs, D. L., and R. L. Jabobs. 1997. Trilliums in woodland and garden. Eco-Gardens,<br />

Decatur, Georgia.<br />

Jacobsen, H. 1977. Lexicon of succulent plants. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, Poole, England.<br />

Jacobson, A. L. 1990. Purpleleaf plum trees. Int. Dendrol. Society Year Book 1989:107-112.<br />

_____ . 1992. Purpleleaf plums. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Jäger, A. 1960. Rosenlexicon. Zentral-Antiquariat Deutschen Demokratischen Republik,<br />

Leipzig.


Tucker-59<br />

Janaki Ammal, E. K. 1951. Chromosomes and evolution of the garden Philadelphus. J. Roy.<br />

Hort. Soc. 76:269-275.<br />

Japan Begonia Society. 1980. Begonias [in Japanese]. Seibundo Shinkosha, Tokyo.<br />

Japan Orchid Growers Association. n.d. Quality stream cattleyas. Josekishi, Japan.<br />

Jarratt, J. 1988. Growing carnations. Kangaroo Press, Kenthurst, Australia.<br />

Jaynes, R. A.. 1975. The laurel book. Hafner Press, New York.<br />

_____ . 1983. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivated laurels, Kalmia spp. Bull. Amer. Assoc. Bot. Gard. Arbor.<br />

17(4):99-106.<br />

_____ . 1988. Kalmia, the laurel book II. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1989. Kalmia registration 1988. HortScience 24:436-437.<br />

_____ . 1997. Kalmia: Mountain laurel and related species. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ , A. J. Brand, and J. Arnow. 1993. Kousa dogwood. Amer. Nurseryman 178(10:40-47.<br />

_____ , and A. H. Graves. 1963. Connecticut hybrid chestnuts and their culture. Connecticut<br />

Agric. Exp. Sta. Bull. 657:1-29.<br />

Jefferson, R. M. 1970. History, progeny, and locations of crabapples of documented authentic<br />

origin. Natl. Arbor. Contr. No. 2.<br />

_____ , and K. K. Wain. 1984. The nomenclature of cultivated Japanese flowering cherries<br />

(Prunus): The Sato-sakura group. Natl. Arbor. Contr. No. 5.<br />

Jefferson-Brown, M. 1991. Narcissus. London: B. T. Bats<strong>for</strong>d Ltd.<br />

_____ , and H. Howland. 2000. The gardener’s guide to growing lilies. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

_____ and K. Pratt. 1997. The gardener’s guide to growing fritillaries. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Jelitto, L., and W. Schacht. 1990. Hardy herbaceous perennials. Third ed. Transl. M. E. Epp.<br />

Timber Press, Portland. 2 vols.<br />

Jensma, J. R. 1989. List of Aster cultivars 1989. J. R. Jensma, Wageningen.<br />

Jervis, R. N. 1980. Aglaonema growers notebook. Roy N. Jervis, Clearwater, Florida.<br />

Johnson, A. T. 1956. Hardy heaths. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, London.<br />

Johnson, M. 2001. The genus Clematis. Magnus Johnsons <strong>Plants</strong>kola AB, Södertälje , Sweden<br />

Johnson, R., O. M. Lindstrom, P. E. Cappilello, and M. A. Dirr. 2000. Cold hardiness of<br />

Lagerstroemia taxa. Southern Nurserymen’s Association Research Conference 45:467-<br />

470.<br />

Jones, D. L. 1987. Encyclopedia of ferns. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Jong, P. C. de. 1986. Betula: Problematiek van de systematiek en de benaming. Betekenis en<br />

mogelijkheden voor de cultuur. Dendroflora 23:3-18.<br />

_____ . 1996. Het geschlacht Aesculus L. de paardekastanje. Belg. Dendrol. 1996:61-85.<br />

_____ . 1999. Onbekend Chinees kleinfruit. Dendroflora 36:28-34.<br />

_____ , and D. Benoit. 1997. Aesculus – Paardekastanje. Dendroflora 34:3-23.<br />

Joyaux, F. 1998. La rose de France: Rosa galllica et sa descendance. Imprimerie Natl.<br />

Kaiser, K. 1998. Das aktuelle Sortiment der Sterndolden. Gartenpraxis 24 (12):20-25.<br />

Kalva, V. 1980. Cerini [in Latvian]. Liesma, Riga.<br />

_____ . 1988. Sirelid [in Latvian]. Vlagus, Riga.<br />

Kapranova, N. N., and L. K. Lukina. 1972. Novye sorta Philadelphus L. selektsii lesostepnoi<br />

opytnoi stantsii. Bjull. Glavn. Bot. Sada 86:81-87.<br />

Kawakami, Mrs. T. c. 1981. The beautiful Saintpaulia [in Japanese]. Shufunotomo, Japan.


Tucker-60<br />

Keeley, J. E., and M. B. Keeley. 1994. Taxonomic affinities of Arctostaphylos and Ceanothus<br />

cultivars. Fremontia 22:27-30.<br />

Kelsey, H. P., and W. A. Dayton, eds. 1942. Standardized plants names. Second ed. J. Horace<br />

McFarland Co., Harrisburg.<br />

Keppel, K., eds. 1996. Registrations and Introductions in 1995. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley,<br />

Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 1997. Registrations and introductions in 1996. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 1998. Registrations and introductions in 1997. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 1999. Registrations and introductions in 1998. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 2000. Registrations and introductions in 1999. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 2001. Registrations and introdutions in 2000. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 2002. Registrations and introductions in 2001. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

_____ . 2003. Registrations and introductions in 2002. Amer. Iris Soc., Sun Valley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Kessenich, G. M., ed. 1976. Peonies: History of the peonies and their origination. Amer. Peony<br />

Soc.<br />

_____ . 1990. The american hybrid peony. Amer. Peony Soc., Hopkins, Minnesota.<br />

Key, H. 1981. Ivies. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1999. Ivies. Lorenz Books, London.<br />

Kharchenko, K. D. 1975. Floksi [in Russian]. Naukova Dumka, Kiev.<br />

Kitchingham, R. M. 1985. Some species and cultivars of Hemerocallis. <strong>Plants</strong>man 7:68-89.<br />

Klehm, R. G. 1995. The peony: Alice Harding's peonies in the little garden & the book of the<br />

peony. Sagapress/Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Klemme, H. 1969. Die Entwicklung des deutschen Cinerarien-Sortimentes (Senecio - Cruentues<br />

- Hybriden) - ein Beitrag zur Geschichte des Zierpflanzenbaues. D. Thesis. Institut für<br />

Zierpflanzenbau, Technische Universität Hannover, Germany.<br />

Knotts, K., and R. Sacher. 2000. Provisional checklist of names/epithets of Nymphaea L.<br />

Intern. Waterlily Water Gard. Soc., Cocoa Beach, Florida.<br />

Knowlton, H., ed. 1959. Iris check list of registered cultivar names 1950-1959. Amer. Iris<br />

Soc., St. Louis.<br />

Knox, G. W. 1995. Crape myrtles. Amer. Nurseryman 181(11):70-74, 77.<br />

Köhlein, F. 1984. Saxifrages and related genera. Transl. D. Winstanley. B. T. Bats<strong>for</strong>d,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1989. Rote Achillen. Gartenpraxis 15(8):26-28.<br />

_____ . 1990a. Rhododendron für Steingärten. Gartenpraxis 16(5):8-11.<br />

_____ . 1990b. Iris sibirica eine Standortbestimmung. Gartenpraxis 16(11):32-35.<br />

_____ . 1991a. Pfingstnelken neu bewertet. Gartenpraxis 17(2):16-21.<br />

_____ . 1991b. Federnelken und Pinks. Gartenpraxis 17(5);44-48.<br />

_____ . 1995. Universelle Hosta-Zwerge. Gartenpraxis 21(1):14-17.<br />

_____ . 1998a. Wie variabel ist die Strandgrasnelke? Gartenpraxis 24(8):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1998b. Aktuelle Sorten der Herbstenziane. Gartenpraxis 24(9):9-14.<br />

_____ . 1998c. Gartensalbei, universelle Nutz- und Zierpflanze. Gartenpraxis 24(1):20-23.<br />

_____ . 1998d. Das aktuelle Zinniensortiment. Gartenpraxis 24(4):24-29.<br />

_____ . 1998e. Warum keine Duftwicken? Gartenpraxis 24(3):28-31.


Tucker-61<br />

_____ . 1998f. Gazanien mit neuen Eigenschaften. Gartenpraxis 24(7):34-37.<br />

Kolster, P., and W. H. Kromhout. 2000. Potentilla fruticosa – een overzicht van het sortiment.<br />

Dendroflora 37:41-59.<br />

Kools, N. 2000. Dutch collection of Sequiadendron giganteum cultivars: Dwarf giants? Amer.<br />

Conifer soc. Bull. 17:119-121.<br />

Kortmann, J. P. 1987. Cryptomeria japonica. Dendroflora 24:8-36.<br />

_____ . 1998. Paeonia – Pioen (Keuringsrapport). Dendroflora 35:58-95.<br />

_____ . 1999. Pinus mugo: keuringsrapport. Dendroflora 36:76-91.<br />

Kostelijk, P. J. 1984. Crocosmia in gardens. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5:246-253.<br />

Koster, R. 1972. Elf nieuwe populiereklonen: ten geleide. Ned. Boschbouw-Tijdschr. 44:173-<br />

179.<br />

Kourik, R. 1998. The lavender garden. Chronicle Books, San Francisco.<br />

Kraan, K. J. 1999. Prunus laurocerasus: keuringsrapport. Dendroflora 36:92-107.<br />

Kramer, J. 1967. Begonias – indoors and out. E. P. Dutton & Co., New York.<br />

Krauss, H. K. 1955. Geraniums <strong>for</strong> home and garden. Macmillan Co., New York.<br />

Kraxberger, M., ed. 1980. American rhododendron hybrids. Amer. Rhododendron Soc.,<br />

Tigard, Oregon.<br />

Kress, C. H. 1996. Ein aktuelles Bergeniensortiment. Gartenpraxis 22(1):22-29.<br />

_____ . 1997. Dauerblüher Katzenminze. Gartenpraxis 23(2):8-11.<br />

Krüssmann, G. 1958a. Sichtung des Weigelien-Sortimentes. Deutsche Baumschule 10(1):1-4.<br />

_____ . 1958b. Das Deutzia-Sortiment. Deutsche Baumschule 10(8):1-10.<br />

_____ . 1958c. Das Philadelphus-Sortiment. Deutsche Baumschule 10(11):1-10.<br />

_____ . 1981. The complete book of roses. Transl. G. Krüssmann and N. Raban. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1984-1986. Manual of cultivated broad-leaved trees & shrubs. Transl. M. E. Epp.<br />

Timber Press, Portland, Oregon. 3 vols.<br />

_____ . 1985. Manual of cultivated conifers. Transl. M. E. Epp. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

_____ , W. Siebler, and W. Tangermann. 1970. Winterharte Gardenstauden. Paul Parey, Berlin.<br />

Kudryavtseva, V. M. 1987. Tyul'pany [in Russian]. Polymya, Minsk.<br />

Kuitert, W., and A. Peterse. 1999. Japanese flowering cherries. Timber press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Kummert, F. 1992. Neuere niedrige Phloxe. Gartenpraxis 18(6):20-23.<br />

Kunming Institute of Botany, Academica Sinica. 1986. Yunnan camellias of China. Science<br />

Press, Beijing.<br />

Kunst, A. G., and A. O. Tucker. 1989. "Where have all the flowers gone?" A preliminary list<br />

of origination lists <strong>for</strong> ornamental plants. Assoc. Preservation Technol. Bull. 21(2):43-<br />

50.<br />

Kusakabe, I. 1987. Nepenthes corrections to world carnivorous plant list. Carnivorous Pl.<br />

Newslett. 16:102.<br />

Laar, H. J. van de. 1966. Pyracantha. Dendroflora 3:40-46.<br />

_____ . 1967. Hosta (Funkia). Dendroflora 4:30-41.<br />

_____ . 1968. Calluna vulgaris. Dendroflora 5:11-12.<br />

_____ . 1969. Pernettya mucronata. Dendroflora 6:53-56.


Tucker-62<br />

_____ . 1970a. Calluna en Erica. Dendroflora 7:6-32.<br />

_____ . 1970b. Prunus laurocerasus. Dendroflora 7:42-61.<br />

_____ . 1971. Cytisus en Genista. Dendroflora 8:3-18.<br />

_____ . 1972. Berberis. Dendroflora 9:9-37.<br />

_____ . 1973. Bergenia. Dendroflora 10:3-14.<br />

_____ . 1974. The heather garden. Collins, London.<br />

_____ . 1975. Mahonia: Mahonia en Mahoberberis. Dendroflora 11/12:18-35.<br />

_____ . 1977a. Calluna en Erica (geelbladige cultivars). Dendroflora 13/14:17-33.<br />

_____ . 1977b. Daboecia. Dendrologia 13/14:34-39.<br />

_____ . 1979. Euonymus - bladhoudende soorten en cultivars. Dendroflora 15/16:9-23.<br />

_____ . 1981a. Epimedium. Dendroflora 18:5-13.<br />

_____ . 1981b. Parthenocissus tricuspidata. Dendroflora 18:41-50.<br />

_____ . 1982. Potentilla fruticosa. Dendroflora 19:29-44.<br />

_____ . 1984. Skimmia. Dendroflora 21:63-80.<br />

_____ . 1985. Clematis; grootbloemige hybriden. Dendroflora 22:33-58.<br />

_____ . 1988. Lonicera (Klimmende soorten, variëteiten en cultivars). Dendroflora 25:36-54.<br />

_____ . 1989. Naamlijst van houtige gewassen. Proefstation voor de Boomwekerij, Boskoop.<br />

_____ . 1992. Parthenocissus-Sortiment: Durcheinander fördert das Geschäft. Deutsche<br />

Baumschule 12:608-609.<br />

_____ . 1997a. Hibiscus syriacus (Keuringsrapport). Dendroflora 34:43-60.<br />

_____ . 1997b. Wisteria – Blauwe regen. Dendroflora 34:104-121.<br />

_____ , and G. Fortgens. 1990. Naamlijst van vaste planten. Proefstation voor de<br />

Boomkwekerij, Boskoop.<br />

_____ , _____ , M. H. A. Hoffman, and P. C. de Jong. 1995. Naamlijst van vaste planten.<br />

Proefstation voor de Boomkwekerij, Boskoop.<br />

Lancaster, R. 1970. Complete guide to Hamamelis __ the witch hazels. Gard. Chron.<br />

167(23):26-29, (24):24-27.<br />

_____ . 1981. An account of Euonymus in cultivation and its availability in commerce.<br />

<strong>Plants</strong>man 3:133-166.<br />

Langdon, B. 1969. The tuberous begonia. Cassell, London.<br />

Larkman, B. 1985. Australia's glorious grevilleas. Amer. Nurseryman 106(9):106-108, 110,<br />

112, 116, 118-119.<br />

Laros, A. J. 1997. Pieris (Keuringsraport). Dendroflora 34:61-92.<br />

_____ . 2001. Japanse Azalea – een overzicht van het sonrtiment. Dendroflora 38:38-67.<br />

Larson, P. D. 1996. Boxwood: its history, cultivation, propagation and dsecriptions. Ed. C. A.<br />

Flanagan and C. F. Sacchi. Foliar Press, Boyce, Virginia.<br />

Lawrence, G. H. M. 1956. The cultivated ivies. Morris Abor. Bull. 7:19-31.<br />

_____ , and A. E. Schulze. 1942. The cultivated Hederas. Gentes Herb. 6:106-173.<br />

Lawson, A. H. 1968. Bamboos. Taplinger Publ. Co., New York.<br />

Lawson-Hall, T., and B. Rothera. 1995. Hydrangeas: A gardeners' guide. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

Leach, D. G. 1961. Rhododendrons of the world and how to grow them. Charles Scribner's


Tucker-63<br />

Sons, New York.<br />

Le Duc, A., and J. C. Pair. 2000. ‘John Pair’ and ‘Autumn Splendor’ sugar maples.<br />

HortScience 35:970-971.<br />

Lee, F. P., F. O. Coe, B. Y. Morrison, M. Perkins, and F. Weiss. 1965. The azalea book. Van<br />

Nostrand, New York.<br />

Lee, G. S., ed. 1966. Daffodil handbook. Amer. Hort. Mag. 45:1-227.<br />

Lee, J. S., and M. S. Roh, eds. 1996. International symposium on the genus Lilium. Acta Hort.<br />

414:1-302.<br />

Leslie, A. C. 1986. International plant registration. Pages 357-365 in B. T. Styles, ed.<br />

Infraspecific classification of wild and cultivated plants. Clarendon Press, Ox<strong>for</strong>d.<br />

_____ . 1995. International registration authorities. Acta Hort. 413:7-11.<br />

Leeuwenberg, A. J. M. 1979. The Loganiaceae of Africa XXVII. Buddleja L. II. Revision of<br />

the African and Asiatic species. Meded. Landbouwhogeschool 79(6):1-163.<br />

Lemmens, R. H. M. J. 1985. Desmodium, Hedysarum, Indigofera en Lespedeza. Dendroflora<br />

22:59-61.<br />

Letts, J. F. 1966. Handbook of heardy heaths and heathers: Hardy, free-flowering, foliage,<br />

evergreen plants. John F. Letts, Windlesham, England.<br />

Leu, H. P. 2002. Trials of sun-tolerant coleus in Florida. Hortideas 19:130-131.<br />

Leue, M. c. 1987. Epiphyllum: The splendor of leaf cacti. Marga Leue, Haunetal.<br />

Lewis, J. 1986a. The classification of conifer cultivars. Acta Hort. 182:159-175.<br />

_____ . 1986b. Conifer registration and the conifer register. Acta Hort. 182:407-410.<br />

_____ , and M. Lynch. 1989. Campanulas. Timber Press, Portland.<br />

Lewis, J. 1993. Additions to the International Conifer Register 1985-1992. Int. Dendrol.<br />

Society Year Book 1992:21-28.<br />

Lewis, P., and M. Lynch. 1998. Campanulas: A gardener’s guide. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Lidén, M., and H. Zetterlund. 1997. Corydalis: a gardener’s guide and a monograph of the<br />

tuberous species. Alpine Gard. Soc. Publ., Dorchester, England.<br />

Lindgren, D. T. 1993. The need to register new cultivar names: Penstemon, a case study.<br />

HortScience 28:82-83.<br />

_____ , and B. Davenport. 1992. List and descripton of named cultivars in the genus<br />

Penstemon (1992). Univ. Nebraska Coop. Ext. EC 92-1246-D.<br />

Lindstrom, J. T., and M. C. Pelto. 2003. Identification of Itea virginica cultivars using RAPD-<br />

PCR. J. Environ. Hort. 21:6-10.<br />

Lis-Balchin, M. 2002. Geranium and pelargonium: The genera Geranium and Pelargonium.<br />

Taylor & Francis, London.<br />

Livingston, P. A., and F. H. West, eds. 1978. Hybrids and hybridizers: Rhododendrons and<br />

azaleas <strong>for</strong> Eastern North America. Harrowwood Books, Newton Square, Pennsylvania.<br />

Lloyd, C. 1965. Clematis. Country Life, London.<br />

_____ . 1989. Clematis. Capability's Books, Deer Park, Wisconsin.<br />

Lock, H. B., ed. 1989. British national register of names of chrysanthemums – amalgamated<br />

edition 1964-1988. National Chrysanthemum Soc., Rugby.<br />

Löcken, H. 1993. Die esten Knap-Hill-Azaleen. Gartenpraxis 19(3):27-31.<br />

Loewer, P., ed. 1988. <strong>Ornamental</strong> grasses. Pl. & Gard. 44(3):1-104.<br />

Lombarts, P. 1984. Malus - sierappels; Keuringsrapport, "Technische Keuringscommissie -<br />

Houtige Siergewassen" van de N.A.K.B. Dendroflora 21:39-62.


Tucker-64<br />

_____ . 1993. Gartenulmen. Gartenpraxis 19(1):28-32.<br />

_____ . 1995. Gartenerlen. Gartenpraxis 21(2):26-31.<br />

_____ . 1998a. Acer ×freemanii. Gartenpraxis 24(5):16-18.<br />

_____ . 1998b. Felsenbirnen mit besonderen Eigenschaften. Gartenpraxis 24(2):26-31.<br />

Longhurst, P., and T. J. Savige. 1982. The camellia. Bay Books, London.<br />

Lord, T. 1988. Aconitum __ notes on the genus. Hardy Pl. Soc. Bull. 10(2):85-91.<br />

Lovejoy, A. 2001. The sage garden. Chronicle Books, San Francisco.<br />

Luneva, Z. S., N. L. Mikhailov, and E. A. Sudakova. 1989. Siren' [in Russian].<br />

Agropromiedat, Moskow.<br />

Lyall, H. G. 1959. Hardy primulas. W. H. & L. Collingridge, London.<br />

Maatsch, R. 1958. Vorläufige Sortenliste von Callistephus chinensis Nees. Inst.<br />

Zierpflanzenbau Techn. Hochschule Hannover.<br />

_____ . 1962. Registrierung des Sortimentes der Beetbegonien (Begonia × semperflorens-<br />

Cultorum) von 1900-1961. Gartenbauwissenschaft 27:399-412.<br />

_____ . 1964. Sortenliste von Callistephus chinensis Nees. 2. Folge. Inst. Zierpflanzenbau<br />

Techn. Hochschule Hannover.<br />

_____ , and G. Nolting. 1968. Registrierung des Sortimentes von Petunia × hybrida Vilm.<br />

Gartenbauwissenschaft 33:285-316.<br />

_____ , and G. Nolting. 1969. Registrierung des Sortimentes der Beetbegonien (Begonia ×<br />

semperflorens Cultorum) II. Nachtrag von 1961-1968. Gartenbauwissenschaft 34:281-<br />

285.<br />

_____ , and G. Nolting. 1970. Sortenliste von Tagetes erecta L., Tagetes patula L. und Tagetes<br />

tenuifolia Cav. (Internationale Registrierliste). Inst. Zierpflanzenbau Techn. Univ.<br />

Hannover.<br />

_____ , and G. Nolting. 1971a. Registrierung des Sortiments der Beetbegonien (Begonia ×<br />

semperflorens cultorum). III. 2. Nachtrag von 1968-1971. Gartenbauwissenschaft<br />

36:201-204.<br />

_____ , and G. Nolting. 1971b. Registrierung des Sortiments von Petunia × hybrida Vilm. 1.<br />

Nachtrag von 1968-1971. Gartenbauwissenschaft 36:241-249.<br />

_____ , and G. Nolting. 1971c. Sortenliste von Callistephus chinensis Nees (Internationale<br />

Registerliste). 3. Folge. Inst. Zierpflanzenbau Techn. Univ. Hannover.<br />

_____ . 1980. Das Buch der Freilandfarne. Paul Parey, Berlin.<br />

Mabberley, D. J. 1984. A monograph of Melia in Asia and the Pacific: The history of white<br />

cedar and Persian lilac. Gard. Bull. Straits Settlem. 37:49-64.<br />

MacDaniels, L. H. 1981. A study of cultivars in Bougainvillea [Nyctaginaceae]. Baileya<br />

21:77-100.<br />

Macoboy, S. 1981. The colour dictionary of camellias. Lansdowne Press, Sydney.<br />

_____ . 1989. What shrub is that? Portland House, New York.<br />

_____ . 1993. The ultimate rose book. Harry N. Abrams, New York.<br />

_____ . 1998. The illustrated encyclopedia of camellias. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Magnolia Society. 1994. <strong>Check</strong> list of cultivated magnolias. Magnolia Soc., Cabin John,<br />

Maryland.<br />

Mallet, C., R. Mallet, and H. van Trier. 1992. Hydrangeas: Species and cultivars. Centre d'Art<br />

Floral, Varengeville s/mer, France.


Tucker-65<br />

Mallett, A. 1983. Elementary "geumetry." Bull. Hardy Pl. Soc. 6(3):95-98.<br />

Malova, N. 2001. Tyul’lany [in Russian].. Olma-Press, Moscow.<br />

Manners, M. M. 1999. Rose registration: <strong>Cultivar</strong> names, code names, and selling names.<br />

Pages 117-124 in S. Andrews, A. Leslie, and C. Alexander, eds. Taxonomy of cultivated<br />

plants: Third international symposium. Roy. Bot. Gard., Kew.<br />

Mansfield, T. C. 1942. Alpines in colour and cultivation. E. P. Dutton & Co., New York.<br />

_____. 1943. Roses in colour and cultivation. William Collins, London.<br />

_____ . 1951. Carnations in colour and cultivation. Collins, London.<br />

Manthey, G. 1990. Fuchsias. Transl. D. Christie. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Markham, E. 1935. The large & small flowered clematis and their cultivation in the open air.<br />

Charles Scribner' Sons, New York.<br />

Marx, K. H. 1990. Gänsekresse. Gartenpraxis 16(3):32-34.<br />

Mast, H. 1986. The naming of plants under the UPOV Convention. Pages 399-417 in B. T.<br />

Styles, ed. Infraspecific classification of wild and cultivated plants. Clarendon Press,<br />

Ox<strong>for</strong>d.<br />

Mathew, B. 1982. Pulmonaria in gardens. <strong>Plants</strong>man 4:100-111.<br />

_____ . 1989a. The genus Lewisia. Timber Press, Portland.<br />

_____ . 1989b. Hellebores. Alpine Gard. Soc., St. John's Woking, England.<br />

Mattern, A. 1993. Neue Monarda-Sorten aus Holland. Gartenpraxis 19(2):8-16.<br />

_____ . 1994. Gartenwürdige europäische Taubnesseln. Gartenpraxins 20(2):8-15.<br />

_____ . 1995a. Neuigkeiten über hohe Sedum. Gartenpraxis 21(2):8-15.<br />

_____ . 1995b. Attraktive Sorten des Scharbockskrauts. Gartenpraxis 21(3):8-13.<br />

Matthews, L. J. 1983. South African Proteaceae in New Zealand. Matthews Publ., Manakau<br />

via Levin, New Zealand.<br />

Matthews, V. A. 2003. The International Clematis register and checklist. <strong>Plants</strong>man N.S.<br />

2:106-109.<br />

McArdle, A. J., and F. S. Santamour. 1984. <strong>Check</strong>lists of cultivars of European ash (Fraxinus)<br />

species. J. Arbor. 10:21-32.<br />

_____ , and F. S. Santamour. 1985. <strong>Cultivar</strong> checklist <strong>for</strong> English oak (Quercus robur). J.<br />

Arbor. 11:307-315.<br />

_____ , and F. S. Santamour. 1987a. <strong>Cultivar</strong> checklist of white oak species (excl. Quercus<br />

robur L.). J. Arbor. 13:203-208.<br />

_____ , and F. S. Santamour. 1987b. <strong>Cultivar</strong> checklist of Quercus (excluding subg. Quercus).<br />

J. Arbor. 13:250-256.<br />

McClintock, D. 1986. Harmonising botanical and cultivar classification with special reference<br />

to hardy heathers. Acta Hort. 182:277-283.<br />

McClintock, E. 1982. Erythrinas cultivated in Cali<strong>for</strong>nia. Allertonia 3:139-154.<br />

McGregor, M. 1995. Saxifrages: The complete cultivars and hybrids. Saxiffage Soc.<br />

Mcharo, M., E. Bush, D. La Bonte, C. Broussard, and L. Urbatsch. 2003. Molecular and<br />

morphological investigation of the ornamental liriopogons. J. Amer. Soc. Hort. Sci.<br />

128:575-577.<br />

McKamey, L. 1983. Secret of the Orient: Dwarf Rhapis excelsa. Rhapis Gard., Corpus Christi,<br />

Texas.<br />

McKelvey, D. 1928. The lilac—a monograph. Macmillan Co., New York.<br />

McLeod, J. A. 2000. Lavender, sweet lavender. Rev. ed. Kangaroo Press, East Roseville, New<br />

South Wales.


Tucker-66<br />

McNaughton, V. 1994. The essential lavender: Growing lavender in New Zealand. Penguin<br />

Books, Auckland.<br />

_____ . 2000. Lavender: The grower’s guide. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

McRae, E. A. 2001. Lilies: A guide <strong>for</strong> growers and collectors. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

McWilliam, A. 1973. Official list of named varieties and hybrids registered by the American<br />

Penstemon Society: 1958-1973. Bull. Amer. Penstemon Soc. 32:7B-7C.<br />

_____ . 1977. Report of the registrar of named varieties and hybrids. Bull. Amer. Penstemon<br />

Soc. 36:7.<br />

Median Iris Society. 1984. The median bearded irises. Introduction and varietal listing.<br />

Median Iris Soc., Wichita, Kansas.<br />

_____ . 1992. Median bearded irises: Introduciton and varietal listing through 1990. Median<br />

Iris Soc., Tipp City, Ohio.<br />

Meier, E. 1994. Aporophyllums. Haseltonia 2:111-131.<br />

_____ . 1995. Easter cacti (Rhipsalidopsis; Cactaceae). Haseltonia 3:10-24.<br />

Meier, W. 1973a. Das Aster amellus-Sortiment. W. Meier, Oeschberg, Schweiz.<br />

_____ . 1973b. Das Aster dumosus-Sortiment. W. Meier, Oeschberg, Schweiz.<br />

_____ . 1973c. Das Aster novae-angliae-Sortiment. W. Meier, Oeschberg, Schweiz.<br />

_____ . 1973d. Das Aster novi-belgii-Sortiment. W. Meier, Oeschberg, Schweiz.<br />

Meikle, C. E., ed. 1980. Modern roses 8. MacFarland Co., Harrisburg.<br />

Mellichamp, L., and R. Gardner. 1987. New cultivars of Sarracenia. Carnivorous Pl. Newslett.<br />

16:39-42.<br />

Menninger, E. D. 1960. Catalog of hybrid Nerine clones 1882-Dec. 31, 1958. Pl. Life 16:63-<br />

74.<br />

Metcalf, L. J. 1963. <strong>Check</strong> list of Leptospermum cultivars. J. Roy. New Zealand Inst. Hort.<br />

5:224-230.<br />

Meyer, F. 1952. Flieder. Eugen Ulmer, Stuttgart.<br />

_____ , P. M. Mazzeo, and D. H. Voss. 1994. A catalog of cultivated woody plants of the<br />

southeastern United States. U. S. Natl. Arbor., Washington, D.C.<br />

Meyer, I. 1991. Monographie der nichtobstlichen Malus-Arten und Sorten. Thesis. Hannover:<br />

Univ. Hannover.<br />

Meyer, M. H. 1975. <strong>Ornamental</strong> grasses: Decorative plants <strong>for</strong> home and garden. Charles<br />

Scribner's Sons, New York.<br />

Mickel, J. T. 1994. Ferns <strong>for</strong> american gardens. Macmillan Publ. Co., New York.<br />

Mikolajski, A. 1997. Heathers. Lorenz Books, London.<br />

_____ . 1998. Lilies. Lorenz Books, London.<br />

_____ . 1999a. Orchids. Lorenz Books, London.<br />

_____ . 1999b. Camellias. Lorenz Books, London.<br />

Miller, D. 1996. Pelargoniums: A gardener’s guide to the species and their cultivars and<br />

hybrids. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Miller, M. 1991. The great chile book. Ten Speed Press, Berkeley, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Mineo, B. 1999. Rock garden plants: A color encyclopedia. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Misono, I. c. 1974-1978. Begonias. Transl. A. M. DeCola and H. Arakawa. Amer. Begonia<br />

Soc., Los Angeles. 2 vols.<br />

Mitchell, A. 1986. Clones of Leyland cypress. Int. Dendrol. Society Year Book 1985:97-100.


Tucker-67<br />

Mitchell, P. J. c. 1973. The Sempervivum & Jovibara handbook. Sempervivum Soc., Burgess<br />

Hill, England.<br />

_____ . 1982. Tentative international register of cultivars of Jovibara, Rosularia and<br />

Sempervivum, Part I. Houselekes 13:64-86.<br />

_____ . 1983. Tentative international register of cultivars of Jovibara, Rosularia and<br />

Sempervivum, Part 2. Houselekes 14:4-40.<br />

_____ . 1985. International cultivar register <strong>for</strong> Jovibarba, Rosularia, Sempervivum. Volume<br />

one. Sempervivum Soc., Burgess Hill, England.<br />

Miyoshi, M. 1916. Japanische Bergkirschen, ihre Wild<strong>for</strong>men und Kulturrassen. Ein Beitrag<br />

zur Formenlehre. J. Coll. Sci. Imp. Univ. Tokyo 24:1-175.<br />

Moody, M., ed. 1992. The illustrated encycopedia of roses. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Moore, H. E. 1953. Comments on some kohlerias cultivated in the United States. Baileya 1:89-<br />

101.<br />

_____ . 1955a. Pelargoniums in cultivation. I. Baileya 3:5-25, 41-46.<br />

_____ . 1955b. Pelargoniums in cultivation. II. Baileya 3:70-97.<br />

Morgenstern, K. D. 1979. Sansevierias. Illertaler Offsetdrucken & Verlag GmbH, Kempten.<br />

Morrison, B. Y. 1953. The Glenn Dale azaleas. Agric. Monogr. U.S.D.A. 20.<br />

Morse, L. L., ed. 1916. Field notes on sweet peas; Also historical notes, cultural notes; revised<br />

and brought up to date. C. C. Morse & Co., San Francisco.<br />

Moser, E. 1991a. Japnische Azaleen von der Havel. Gartenpraxis 17(6):44-48.<br />

_____ . 1991b. Rhododendron-Kiusianum-Hybriden aus Dresden. Gartenpraxis 17(12):27-29.<br />

_____ . 1993. Japanische Azaleen aus Holstein. Gartenpraxis 19(7):20-23.<br />

Motes, M. R. 1997. Vandas: Their botany, history, and culture. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Müssel, H. 1971. Das Sorbus-Sortiment in Weihenstephan unter besonderer Berücksichtigung<br />

der Lombarts-Hybriden. Pages 1-10 in Jahresbericht 1971. Fachhochschule<br />

Weihenstephan.<br />

_____ . 1986. A study on the cultivars of the Aconitum napellus- and A. variegatum-complex<br />

according to the characteristics <strong>for</strong> destination of the inferior taxa. Acta Hort. 182:89-<br />

94.<br />

_____ . 1996. Mädesüss und andere Spierstauden. Gartenpraxis 22(4):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1998a. Das Sortiment der Blauschwingel. Gartenpraxis 24(10):16-23.<br />

_____ . 1998b. Robuste Kissenastern für flächige Pflanzungen. Gartenpraxis 24(1):32-35.<br />

Muir, N. 1984. A survey of the genus Tilia. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5:206-242.<br />

_____ . 1988. Additional notes on hybrid limes (Tilia). <strong>Plants</strong>man 10:104-127.<br />

Mukherjee, I., and T. N. Khoshoo. 1970. Genetic-evolutionary studies on cultivated cannas.<br />

VII: Taxonomic treatment and horticultural classification. J. Bombay Nat. Hist. Soc.<br />

67:390-397.<br />

Mulligan, B. O. 1958. Maples cultivated in the United States and Canada. Amer. Assoc. Bot.<br />

Gard. Arbor.<br />

Munson, R. H. 1973. Vegetative key to selected dwarf and slow-growing confiers. M.S.<br />

Thesis, Cornell Univ., Ithaca.<br />

_____ . 1981. Integrated methods of cultivar identification: A case study of selected Ericaceae.<br />

Ph.D. Thesis, Cornell Univ., Ithaca.


Tucker-68<br />

_____ . 1984. Heaths and heathers cutlivated in North America [Ericaceae]. Baileya 22:101-<br />

133.<br />

Munson, R. W. 1989. Hemerocallis, the daylily. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Murray, A. E. 1970. A monograph of the Aceraceae. Ph.D. Thesis. Pennsylvania State Univ.,<br />

Philadelphia.<br />

Nakamura, M. 1964. Adonis amurensis in Japan. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 89:121-125.<br />

Nannenga-Bremekamp, N. E. 1970. Notes on Hedera species, varieties and cultivars grown in<br />

the Netherlands. Meded. Bot. Tuinen Belmonte Arbor. Wageningen 13:195-212.<br />

Narain, P. 1988. Gloriosa: <strong>Cultivar</strong>s and natural species. Herbertia 44:2-12.<br />

National Chrysanthemum Society. 1991. Handbook on chrysanthemum classification. Natl.<br />

Chrysanthemum Soc.<br />

Nelson, E. C. 1986. Sarracenia hybrids raised at Glasnevin Botanic Gardens, Ireland:<br />

Nomenclature and typification. Taxon 35:574-578.<br />

Nelson, K., ed. 1971. Iris check list of registered cultivar names 1960-1969. Amer. Iris Soc.,<br />

Tulsa, Oklahoma.<br />

_____ , and K. Keppel, eds. 1981. Iris check list of registered cultivar names 1970-1979.<br />

Amer. Iris Soc., Tulsa, Oklahoma.<br />

_____ , and _____ , eds. 1991. Registrations and introductions in 1990. Amer. Iris Soc., Tulsa,<br />

Oklahoma<br />

_____ , and _____ , eds. 1992a. Iris check list of registered cultivar names 1980-1989. Amer.<br />

Iris Soc., Tulsa, Oklahoma.<br />

_____ , and _____ , eds. 1992b. Registrations and introductions in 1991. Amer. Iris Soc.,<br />

Tulsa, Oklahoma.<br />

_____ , and _____ , eds. 1993. Registrations and introductions in 1992. Amer. Iris Soc., Tulsa,<br />

Oklahoma.<br />

_____ , and _____ , eds. 1994. Registrations and introductions in 1993. . Amer. Iris Soc.,<br />

Tulsa, Oklahoma.<br />

_____ , and _____ , eds. 1995. Registrations and Introductions in 1994. . Amer. Iris Soc.,<br />

Tulsa, Oklahoma.<br />

Neudecker, T. 1988. Neue Sorten der Sternmagnolia. Gartenpraxis 14(5):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1989. Grossblumige Magnolienhybriden. Gartenpraxis 15(3):30-35.<br />

_____ . 1990. Magnolia liliiflora und ihre Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 16(3):8-13.<br />

Newsholme, C. 1992. Willows: The genus Salix. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Nichols, L. P. 1984. Thirteen flowering crab apples. Amer. Nurseryman 159(9):26-28, 30-31.<br />

Nicholson, M. E., and R. G. Hawke. 1995. Rudbeckia <strong>for</strong> cultivated landscapes. Pl. Eval.<br />

Notes. No. 8.<br />

Nienstaedt, H., and A. H. Graves. 1955. Blight resistant chestnuts. Connecticut Agric. Exp.<br />

Sta. Circ. 192:1-18.<br />

Nietner, T. E. 1880. Die Rose. Wiegandt, Hempel, & Parey, Berlin.<br />

Nijhuis, M. 1994. Fuchsias: The complete handbook. Cassell Publ., London (also published as<br />

Fuchsien-Atlas. Eugen Ulmer, Stuttgart).<br />

Niwa, T. 1936. Chrysanthemums of Japan. Sanseido Co., Tokyo.<br />

Noble, M., and B. Graham. 1962. You can grow camellias. Harper & Row, New York.<br />

Nolting, G., and K. Zimmer. 1975a. Registrierung des Sortiments der Beetbegonien (Begonia<br />

× semperflorens Cultorum). IV. 3. Nachtrag von 1971-1975. Gartenbauwissenschaft


Tucker-69<br />

40:188-190.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1975b. Registrierung des Sortiments von Petunia × hybrida Vilm. III. 2.<br />

Nachtrag von 1971-1975. Gartenbauwissenschaft 40:234-239.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1975c. Sortenlisten von Callistephus chinensis Nees (Internationale<br />

Registerliste). 4. Folge. Tagetes erecta L., Tagetes patula L. und Tagetes tenuifolia<br />

Cav. (Internationale Registerliste). 2. Folge. Inst. Zierpflanzenbau Techn. Univ.<br />

Hannover.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1980a. Registrierung des Sortiments der Beetbegonien (Begonia<br />

Semperflorens-Hybriden). V. 4. Nachtrag von 1975-1979. Gartenbauwissenschaft<br />

45:42-45.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1980b. Registrierung des Sortiments von Petunia × hybrida Vilm. IV. 3.<br />

Nachtrag von 1975-1979. Gartenbauwissenschaft 45:139-143.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1981. Sortenlisten von Callistephus chinensis Nees (Internationale<br />

Registerliste). 5. Folge. Tagetes erecta L., Tagetes patula L. und Tagetes tenuifolia<br />

Cav. (Internationale Registerliste). 3. Folge. Inst. Zierpflanzenbau Techn. Univ.<br />

Hannover.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1984. Registrierung des Sortiments von Petunia × hybrida Vilm. V. 4.<br />

Nachtrag von 1979-1983. Gartenbauwissenschaft 49:280-283.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1985. Registrierung des Sortiments der Beetbegonien (Begonia ×<br />

semperflorens Cultorum). VI. 5. Nachtrag von 1979-1983. Gartenbauwissenschaft<br />

50:93-95.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1987. Sortenlisten von Begonia-Semperflorens-Hybriden. VII. 6. Nachtrag<br />

von 1983-1987. Callistephus chinensis Nees (Internationale Registerliste). 6. Folge von<br />

1981-1987. Petunia × hybrida Vilm. (Internationale Registerliste). VI. 5. Nachtrag von<br />

1983-1987. Tagetes erecta L., Tagetes patula L. und Tagetes tenuifolia Cav.<br />

(Internationale Registerliste). 4. Folge von 1981-1987. Inst. Zierpflanzenbau Univ.<br />

Hannover.<br />

Norris, C. A. 1984. Crape myrtle recommendations. Amer. Nurseryman 159(9):45-46, 48-49.<br />

Norton, J. B. S. 1924. Seven thousand dahlias in cultivation. J. B. S. Norton, College Park,<br />

Maryland.<br />

_____ , W. F. Stuntz, and W. R. Ballard. 1949. Descriptive catalog of Hemerocallis clones<br />

1893 to 1948. Amer. Pl. Life Soc., Stan<strong>for</strong>d, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Obrizok, B. 1991a. Dwarf conifer selection guide and checklist. Dutchess County Conifers,<br />

Lagrangeville, New York.<br />

_____ . 1991b. A garden of conifers: Introduction and selection guide. Capability’s Books,<br />

Deer Park, Wisconsin.<br />

Ogden, S. 1994. Garden bulbs <strong>for</strong> the South. Dallas: Taylor Publ. Co.<br />

Ogg, S. 1961. Delphiniums <strong>for</strong> everyone. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, London.<br />

Ohwi, J., and Y. Ohta. 1973. Flowering cherries of Japan. Heibonsha, Tokyo.<br />

O’Leary, M. C., and T. H. Boyle. 1999. <strong>Cultivar</strong> identifciation and genetic diversity within a<br />

Hatiora (Cactaceae) clonal germplasm colleciton using isozymes. J. Amer. Hort. Sci.<br />

124:373-376.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 2000. Diversity and distribution of isozymes in a Schlumbergera<br />

(Cactaceae) clonal germplasm collection. J. Amer. Soc. Hort. Sci. 125:81-85.<br />

Olmsted, F. L., F. V. Coville, and H. P. Kelsey. 1923. Standardized plant names. Amer. Joint


Tucker-70<br />

Committee Hort. Nomencl., Salem, Massachusetts.<br />

Orlóci, L. 1999. Study of the genus × Cupressocyparis. Amer. Conifer Soc. Bull. 16:106-113.<br />

Ottesen, C. 1989. <strong>Ornamental</strong> grasses: The amber wave. McGraw-Hill Publ. Co., New York.<br />

Oudolf, P. 1993. Neue Monarda-Sorten aus Holland. Gartenpraxis 1993(2):8-16.<br />

Oudshoorn, W. 1975. Vaste planten terzijde. Aantekeningen t.a.v. het Erigeron-sortiment.<br />

Groen 31(6):180.<br />

Page, M. 1997. The gardener’s guide to growing peonies. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Page, R. G. 1998. The Cistus and Halimium hybrids of Eric Sammons. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5(4):219-<br />

230.<br />

Pagen, F. J. J. 1987. Oleanders: Nerium L. and the oleander cultivars. Agric. Univ.<br />

Wageningen Pap. 87-2.<br />

Pape, G. 1993. Pulmonarien mit hohem Zierwert. Gartenpraxis 19(4):8-12.<br />

Pardatscher, G., and K. Flubacher. 1993. Gartenwürdige Ginster. Gartenpraxis 19(5):42-47.<br />

Park, B. 1956. Collins guide to roses. Collins, London.<br />

Parker, P. F. 1986. A computerised data base <strong>for</strong> the identification and classification of<br />

cultivars of Fuchsia × hybrida Voss. Acta Hort. 182:411-416.<br />

Paul, W. 1863. Notes on the varieties of English holly. Proc. Roy. Hort. Soc. 3:110-117.<br />

Pavord, A. 1999. The tulip. Bloomsbury, New York.<br />

Peckham, Mrs. W. H., ed. 1929. Alphabetical iris check list. Amer. Iris Soc., Baltimore.<br />

Peckham, E. A. S., ed. 1940. Alphabetical iris check list. Amer. Iris Soc., Baltimore.<br />

Pedley, R., and K. Pedley. 1974. Coleus: A guide to cultivation and identification. John<br />

Bartholomew and Son, Edinburgh.<br />

Perry, F. 1989. Waterlilies and other aquatic plants. Henry Holt and col., New York.<br />

Petit, T. L., and J. P. Peat. 2000. The color encyclopedia of caylilies. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Philip, C. 1992. The plant finder. Sixth ed. Ed. T. Lord. Hardy Pl. Soc., Whitbourne, England.<br />

<strong>Phillips</strong>, C. E. L., and P. N. Barber. 1967. The Rothschild rhododendrons: A record of the<br />

gardens at Exbury. Cassell, London.<br />

_____ . 1979. The Rothschild rhododendrons: A record of the gardens at Exbury. Rev. ed.<br />

Macmillan Publ. Co., New York.<br />

<strong>Phillips</strong>, G. A. 1933. Delphiniums: Their history and cultivation. Macmillan Co., New York.<br />

<strong>Phillips</strong>, R. 1978. Trees of North America and Europe. Random House, New York.<br />

_____ , and M. Rix. 1988. Roses. Random House, New York.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1991. The Random House book of perennials. Random House, New York.<br />

2 vols.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1997. Indoor and greenhouse plants. Random House, New York. 2 vols.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1998. Old roses. Random House, New York.<br />

Picton, P. 1999. The gardener’s guide to growing asters. Timber Press, Portland.<br />

Pierot, S. W. 1974. The ivy book. Macmillan Publ. Co., New York.<br />

Pieters, A. J. 1905. A variety collection of gladiolus. U.S.D.A. Bur. Pl. Industr. Bull. 177.<br />

Pietropaolo, J., and P. Pietropaolo. 1986. Carnivorous plants of the world. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

Plietzsch, A. P., and H.-H. Jesch. 1994. Cornus. Deutsche Baumschule 12:616-620.<br />

Plovanich-Jones, A. E., A. Coombes, and D. T. Hoa. 1999. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Quercus cerris ×<br />

Quercus suber: Q. × hispanica, the Lucombe oak and inter-simple sequence repeats<br />

(ISSRs). Pages 287-296 in S. Andrews, A. Leslie, and C. Alexander, eds. Taxonomy of


Tucker-71<br />

cultivated plants: Third international symposium. Roy. Bot. Gard., Kew.<br />

Plumeria Society of America. 1988. Register of plumeria cultivars. Second ed. Plumeria Soc.<br />

Amer.<br />

Poliakoff, A. T. 1987. Guide to orchid hybrids: The Vanda family. Potomac Data Press,<br />

Alexandria, Virginia.<br />

Poor, J. M., ed. 1984. <strong>Plants</strong> that merit attention. Volume I – Trees. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Praeger, R. L. 1921. An account of the genus Sedum as found in cultivation. J. Roy. Hort. Soc.<br />

46:1-314.<br />

Pratt, K. n.d. Fritillaria: A catalogue of almost 100 species and varieties. Kevin Pratt, Edgeley,<br />

Stockport, Manchester, Great Britain.<br />

Preston, I. 1944. Rosybloom crabapples <strong>for</strong> northern gardens. J. New York Bot. Gard. 45:169-<br />

174.<br />

Pridham, A. M. S. 1932. The gladiolus: Its history, classification, and culture. Cornell Univ.<br />

Agric. Exp. Sta. Bull. 231.<br />

Pringle, J. S. 1973. The cultivated taxa of Clematis, Sect. Atragene [Ranunculaceae]. Baileya<br />

19:49-89.<br />

Proudley, B., and V. Proudley. 1974. Heathers in color. Hippocrene Books, New York.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1975. Fuchsias in color. Hippocrene books, New York.<br />

Pulaczewski, M. 2000. Ginkgo biloba L. – A tree ancient and modern. Natl. Pl. Collect. Dir.<br />

2000:33-37.<br />

Puttock, A. G. 1957. Primulas. John G. Gif<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Rainbow Gardens. 1979. Directory of epiphyllums and other related epiphytes. Rainbow<br />

Gardens.<br />

Ranson, E. R. 1946. Michaelmas daisies and other garden asters. John Gif<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Raulston, J. C. 1984. <strong>Plants</strong> in the NCSU Arboretum - Nandina domestica-'heavenly bamoo.'<br />

Friends North Carolina State Arbor. Newslett. 11:5-9.<br />

_____ . 1990. Redbud. Amer. Nurseryman 171(5):39-51.<br />

_____ . 1992. Styrax. Amer. Nurseryman 176(9):23-32, 34.<br />

Raynor, L. 1998. The genus Echinacea. Natl. Pl. Collect. Dir. 1998:14-20.<br />

Read, V. 2000. Developments in Hippeastrum hybridization 1799-1999. Natl. Pl. Collect. Dir.<br />

2000:38-52.<br />

Rector, A. 1963. The master list of African violets...1935 to 1963. Ed. A. Wright. African<br />

Violet Soc. Amer., Knoxville, Tennessee.<br />

Reed, S. M. 2002. Flowering per<strong>for</strong>mance of 21 Hydrangea macrophylla cultivars. J. Environ.<br />

Hort. 20:155-160.<br />

Rehder, A. 1940. Manual of cultivated trees and shrubs hardy in North America. Second ed.<br />

Macmillan Co., New York.<br />

_____ . 1949. Bibliography of cultivated trees and shrubs hardy in the cooler temperate regions<br />

of the northern hemisphere. Arnold Arbor., Jamaica Plain, Massachusetts.<br />

Reich, W. 1996. Kleine Rhododendren aus Alfeld. Gartenpraxis 22(5):20-25.<br />

Reiley, H. E. 1992. Success with rhododendrons and azaleas. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Reinhardt, T. A., M. Reinhardt, and M. Mopskowitz. 1989. <strong>Ornamental</strong> grass gardening. HP<br />

Books, Los Angeles.<br />

Rhodes, H. L. J. 1954. The cultivated shrubby potentillas. Baileya 2:89-96.<br />

Rice, G., and E. Strangman. 1993. The gardener's guide to growing hellebores. Timber press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.


Tucker-72<br />

Rieck, I. 1994. Variable Paeonia tenuifolia. Gartenpraxis 20(5):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1995. Paeonia peregrina und ihre Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 21(2):16-19.<br />

_____ . 1998. Strauchpäonien aus Gansu. Gartenpraxis 24(5):8-14.<br />

Rix, M., and R. <strong>Phillips</strong>. 1981. The bulb book. London: Pan Books Ltd.<br />

Roberts, A. V. 1984. The chromosomes of Nerine. Garden (London) 109:413-415.<br />

Roberts, K. 1998. The 1998 cumulative checklist of reblooming iris. Reblooming Iris Soc.<br />

Robinson, M. A. 2000. Auriculas <strong>for</strong> everyone: How to grow and show perfect plants. Guild<br />

Master Craftsman, Lewes, England.<br />

Robinson, J. T. 1989. New CP cultivar received in 1988. Carnivorous Pl. Newslett. 18:39.<br />

Robinson, M. 2003. Magnolia stellata – The species and the cultivars. Rhododendrons<br />

Magnolias Camellias 2003:42-48.<br />

Rogers, A. 1995. Peonies. Portland, Oregon: Timber Press.<br />

Rogers, O. M. 1976. Tentative international register of cultivar names in the genus Syringa.<br />

New Hampshire Agric. Exp. St. Res. Rep. 49.<br />

Rogerson, B. 1985. Clematis viticella and its progeny. Pacific Hort. 46(1):40-44.<br />

Roller, K. J., D. H. Thibault, and V. Hidahl. 1972. Guide to the identification of poplar<br />

cultivars on the prairies. Canad. For. Serv. Publ. 1311.<br />

Romanowski, N. 2002. Gardening with carnivores: Sarracenia pitcher plants in cultivation & in<br />

the wild. Univ. Press Florida, Gainesville.<br />

Rose, P. Q. 1980. Ivies. Bland<strong>for</strong>d Press, Poole, England.<br />

Rothmund, S. 1996. Aktuelle Sorten des Türkenmohns. Gartenpraxis 22(11):12-18.<br />

Rouse, R. J., P. R. Fantz, and T. E. Bilderback. 1997. Problems identifying Japanese cedar<br />

cultivated in the United States. HortTechnology 7:129-133.<br />

_____ , _____ , and _____ . 2000a. Problems identifying Japanese cedar cultivated in the United<br />

States. Amer. Conifer soc. Bull. 17:123-130.<br />

_____ , _____ and _____ . 2000b. Descriptions and a key to cultivars of Japanese cedar<br />

cultivated in the eastern United States. HortTechnology 10:252-266.<br />

Rowlands, G. 1999. The gardener’s guide to growing dahlias. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Royal General Bulbgrowers' Association. 1971. Classified list and international register of<br />

tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Hillegom.<br />

_____ . 1976. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene<br />

Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Hillegom.<br />

_____ . 1981. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene<br />

Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Hillegom, Holland.<br />

_____ . 1987. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene<br />

Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Hillegom, Holland.<br />

_____ . 1991. International checklist <strong>for</strong> hyacinths and miscellaneous bulbs. Koninklijke<br />

Algemeene Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Hillegom, Holland.<br />

Royal General Bulbgrowers' Society. 1958. A classified list of tulip names. Koninklijke<br />

Algemeene Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Haarlem.<br />

_____ . 1960. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene<br />

Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Haarlem.<br />

_____ . 1963. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene<br />

Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Haarlem.<br />

_____ . 1965. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene


Tucker-73<br />

Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Haarlem.<br />

_____ . 1969. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke Algemeene<br />

Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Haarlem.<br />

Royal Horticultural Society. 1902. Report on perennial asters grown at Chiswick, 1902. J.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc. 27:638-648.<br />

_____ . 1908a. Asters at Wisley, 1906-07. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 33:184-211.<br />

_____ . 1908b. Cannas at Wisley, 1906-07. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 33:212-222.<br />

_____ . 1908c. Tulips at Wisley, 1906-07. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 33:232-280.<br />

_____ . 1908d. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1909. Cannas out of doors at Wisley, 1908. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 34:299-302.<br />

_____ . 1910. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1912. Violas at Wisley, 1912. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 38:275-287.<br />

_____ . 1913a. Violas at Wisley, 1913. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 39:381-400.<br />

_____ . 1913b. Antirrhinums at Wisley, 1913. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 39:635-656.<br />

_____ . 1917. Report of the tulip nomenclature committee 1914-1915. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1926a. Perennial asters at Wisley, 1925. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 51:101-108.<br />

_____ . 1926b. Sweet peas at Wisley, 1921-25. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 51:109-112.<br />

_____ . 1926c. Annual scabious at Wisley, 1924. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 51:113-118.<br />

_____ . 1926d. Helianthemums at Wisley, 1924-25. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 51:119-123.<br />

_____ . 1926e. Delphiniums at Wisley, 1924-25. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 51:124-137.<br />

_____ . 1928. Bearded irises tried at Wisley, 1925-27. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 53:116-160.<br />

_____ . 1929. A tentative list of tulip names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1930a. A tentative list of tulip names. Supplement no. 1. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1930b. Bearded irises tried at Wisley, 1928-29. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 55:132-140.<br />

_____ . 1930c. Gaillardias at Wisley, 1929. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 5:141-144.<br />

_____ . 1931a. Perennial lupins tried at Wisley, 1929-30. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 56:115-120.<br />

_____ . 1931b. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1938. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1939. A classified list of tulip names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1948. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1955. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1958. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1961. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1964. Rhododendron handbook 1964. Part two. Rhododendron hybrids. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1965. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1969a. Tentative classified list and international register of dahlia names 1969. Roy.<br />

Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1969b. Rhododendron handbook 1969. Part two. Rhododendron hybrids. Roy. Hort.


Tucker-74<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1969c. Classified list of daffodil names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1970a. A tentative check-list of delphinium names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1970b. Astilbes. Proc. Roy. Hort. Soc. 95:132-135.<br />

_____ . 1972. Sander's list of orchid hybrids. Addendum 1961-1970. Containing the names<br />

and parentage of all orchid hybrids registered from 1st January 1961 to 31st December<br />

1970. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1974. International dianthus register. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1975. Classified list and interantional register of daffodil names 1960-1975. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1978. Agapanthus. Proc. Roy. Hort. Soc. 103:89-93.<br />

_____ . 1980. Sander's list of orchid hybrids. Addendum 1971-1975. Containing the names<br />

and parentages of all orchid hybrids registered from 1st January 1971 to 31st December<br />

1975. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1981. Sander's list of orchid hybrids. Addendum 1976-1980. Containing the names<br />

and parentages of all orchid hybrids registered from 1st January 1976 to 31st December<br />

1980. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1982a. The international lily register. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1982b. First supplement to the international lily register. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1983. The international dianthus register. Second ed. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1984a. Second supplement to the international lily register 1982. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1984b. The international dianthus register. Second edition (1983). First supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1985a. Third supplement to the international lily register 1982. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1985b. The international dianthus register. Second edition (1983). Second supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1985c. Handbook on orchid nomenclature and registration. 3rd ed. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1985d. The international conifer register. A preliminary list comprising registartions of<br />

cultivars of the Coniferopsida 1947-1984. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1986a. Fourth supplement to the international lily register 1982. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1986b. The international dianthus register. Second edition (1983). Third supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1986c. Sander's list of orchid hybrids. Addendum 1981-1985. Containing the name<br />

and parentage of all orchid hybrids registered from 1st January 1981 to 31st December<br />

1985. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1987a. Fifth supplement to the international lily register 1982. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1987b. The international conifer register. Part 1 - Abies to Austrotaxus. Roy. Hort.


Tucker-75<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1988a. The international lily register (1982). Sixth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1988b. The international dianthus register (1983). Fourth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1988c. The international dianthus register (1983). Fifth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1988d. The International dahlia register (1969). Second supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1988e. The international rhododendron register (1958). 28 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1989a. Lily register. Seventh supplement 1989. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1989b. The international dianthus register (1983). Sixth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1989c. The international dahlia register (1969). Third supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1989d. The international rhododendron register. <strong>Check</strong>list of rhododendron names<br />

registered 1959-1987. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1989e. The international rhododendron register (1958). 29 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1989f. The international daffodil checklist. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1989g. The international daffodil register (1969). 15 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1989h. The international conifer register. Part 2 - Belis to Pherosphaera (excluding the<br />

cypresses and Juniperus). Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1990a. The international dianthus register (1983). Seventh supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1990b. The international lily register (1982). Eighth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1990c. The international rhododendron register (1958). 30 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1990d. The international daffodil register (1969). 16 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1990e. Rhododendrons with camellias and magnolias 1991. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1991a. The international lily register (1982). Ninth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1991b. The international rhododendron register (1958). 31 st supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1991c. The international daffodil register (1969). 17 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1991d. The international dianthus register (1983). Eighth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.


Tucker-76<br />

_____ . 1991e. Sander's list of orchid hybrids. 5 Year addendum. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1992a. The international dahlia register (1969). Fourth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1992b. The international lily register (1982). Tenth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1992c. The international rhododendron register (1958). 32 nd supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1992d. Manual of bulbs. Roy. Hort. Soc. (also published 1995. Portland, Oregon:<br />

Timber Press).<br />

_____ . 1992e. The international daffodil register (1969). 18 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1992f. The international dianthus register (1983). Ninth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1992g. The international conifer register. Part 3: The cypresses (Chamaecyparis,<br />

Cupressus and ×Cupressocyparis). Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1992h. Rhododendrons with camellias and magnolias 1993. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1993a. The international lily register (1982). Eleventh supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1993b. The international rhododendron register (1958). 33 rd supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London. .<br />

_____ . 1993c. The international dianthus register (1983). Tenth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London. ).<br />

_____ . 1993d. The international daffodil register (1969). 19 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1993e. Rhododendrons with camellias nd magnolias 1994. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1994a. The international lily register (1982). 12 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1994b. The international rhododendron register (1958). 34 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc. .<br />

_____ . 1994c. The international dianthus register (1983). Eleventh supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1994d. The international daffodil register (1969). 20 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1994e. The International dahlia register (1969). First supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1994f. Rhododendrons with camellias and magnolias 1995. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1995a. The international rhododendron register (1958). 35 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1995b. The international dianthus register (1983). Twelfth supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1995c. The international daffodil register (1969). 21 st supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1995d. The international dahlia register (1969). Fifth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,


Tucker-77<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1995e. The international dahlia register (1969). Sixth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1995f. The international lily register (1982). 13 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1996a. The international delphinium register cumulative supplement 1970-1995. Roy.<br />

Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1996b. The international lily register (1982). 14 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1996c. The international dahlia register (1969). Seventh supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1996d. The international dianthus register (1983). 13 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1996e. The international rhododendron register (1958). 36 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1997a. The international dahlia register (1969). Eighth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1997b. The international dianthus register (1983). 14 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1997c. The international lily register (1982). 15 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1997d. Rhododendrons with camellias and magnolias 1996-97. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1998a. The international daffodil register and classified list 1998. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1998b. The international dianthus register (1983). 15 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1998c. The international rhododendron register (1958). 37 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1998d. The international rhododendron register (1958). 38 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1998e. The international dahlia register (1969). Ninth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1998f. The international lily register (1982). 16 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1998g. The international daffodil register and classified list (1998). First supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1998h. Rhododendrons with camellias and magnolias 1998. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1999a. The international dianthus register (1983). 16 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1999b. The international dahlia register (1969). Tenth supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 1999c. The international lily register (1982). 17 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 1999d. The international daffodil register and classified list (1998). Second supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2000a. The international dianthus register (1983). 17 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,


Tucker-78<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 2000b. The international lily register (1982). 18 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2000c. The international daffodil register and classified list (1998). Third supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2000d. The international rhododendron register (1958). 39 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2000e. Rhododendrons with camellias and magnolias 2000. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2001a. The international dianthus register (1983). 18 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 2001b. The international lily register (1982). 19 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2001c. The international daffodil register and classified list (1998). Fourth supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2001d. The international rhododendron register (1958). 40 th supplement. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2002a. The international dianthus register (1983). 19 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc.,<br />

London.<br />

_____ . 2002b. The international lily register (1982). 20 th supplement. Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ . 2002c. The international daffodil register and classified list (1998). Fifth supplement.<br />

Roy. Hort. Soc., London.<br />

_____ , and General Dutch Bulbgrowers' Society. 1948. A classified list of tulip names. Roy.<br />

Hort. Soc., London, and Gen. Dutch Bulbgrowers' Soc., Haarlem.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1952. A classified list of tulip names. Roy. Hort. Soc., London, and Gen.<br />

Dutch Bulbgrowers Soc., Haarlem.<br />

Royal National Rose Society. 1976. Roses: A selected list of varieties. Sixth ed. Roy. Natl.<br />

Rose Soc., St. Albans.<br />

Royon, R. 1986. Cultivated variety denominations and trademarks. Acta Hort. 182:273-275.<br />

Rubtsov, L. I., V. G. Zhogoleva, and N. A. Lyapunova. 1961. Sad sireni (Syingarii) [in<br />

Russian]. Iedatel. Akad. Nauk, Kiev.<br />

_____ , N. L. Mikhailov, and V. G. Zhogoleva. 1982. Lilac species and cultivars in cultivation<br />

in U.S.S.R. Lilacs 11(2):1-38.<br />

_____ . 1997a. Holunder neu entdecken. Gartenpraxis 23(9):18-25.<br />

_____ . 1997b. Weisse Iris sibirica. Gartenpraxis 23(10):40-42.<br />

_____ . 1998. Falscher Bambus. Gartenpraxis 24 (12):40-43.<br />

Rücker, K. 1988. Gelbblühende Amerikaner – die Gattung Coreopsis. Gartenpraxis 14(7):8-<br />

16.<br />

_____ . 1995. Verkannter Günsel. Gartenpraxis 21(1):8-13.<br />

Ruksans, J. 1981. Krokusi [in Latvian]. Avots, Riga.<br />

Rush<strong>for</strong>th, K. 1985. Hornbeams and hop hornbeams. <strong>Plants</strong>man 7:173-191, 205-212.<br />

Russell, P. 1934. The oriental flowering cherries. U.S.D.A. Circ. 313.<br />

Sadie, J. 1994. The international Protea register.<br />

_____ . 1995. The international Protea register. Second ed.<br />

_____ . 1997. The international Protea register. Fourth ed.<br />

_____ . 1998. The international Protea register. Fifth ed.


Tucker-79<br />

St. Pierre, R. G. 1992. Growing saskatoons: A manual <strong>for</strong> orchardists. Saskatoon,<br />

Saskatchewan, Canada: Dept. Hort. Sci., Univ. Saskatchewan.<br />

Salley, H. E., and J. E. Greer. 1986. Rhododendron hybrids: A guide to their origins (includes<br />

selected, named <strong>for</strong>ms of rhododendron species). Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Salley, H. E., and J. E. Greer. 1992. Rhododendron hybrids: A guide to their origins (includes<br />

selected, named <strong>for</strong>ms of rhododendron species). Second ed. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Sampson, D. R. 1965. Breeding Philadelphus <strong>for</strong> double flower, purple center and low stature.<br />

Euphytica 14:157-160.<br />

Sand, A.W. W. 1921. A study of the pogon iris. M.S. Thesis. Cornell Univ., Ithaca, New York.<br />

_____ . 1925. Bearded iris: A perennial suited to all gardens. Cornell Univ. Agric. Exp. Sta.<br />

Bull. 112.<br />

Sanders. 1946. Sanders' complete list of orchid hybrids containing the names and parentages of<br />

all the known hybrid orchids whether introduced or artificially raised to January 1st,<br />

1946. Sanders, St. Albans, England.<br />

Sanders, C. R. 1982. Comments on Hamamelidaceae. <strong>Plants</strong>man 4:126-127.<br />

Sanders, D. F., and Mrs. W. J. Wre<strong>for</strong>d. 1961. David Sanders' one-table list of orchid hybrids<br />

containing the names and parentages of all registered orchid hybrids from the 1st<br />

January 1946 to 31st December 1960. David Sander's Orchids, East Grinstead, England.<br />

Sanders, T. W. 1922. Rock gardens and alpine plants, including water, bog, water and moraine<br />

gardens. Third ed. W. H. & L. Collingridge, London.<br />

Sandhack, H. A. 1927. Dahlien und Gladiolen: ihre Beschreibung, Kultur und Züchtung. Paul<br />

Parey, Berlin.<br />

Santamour, F. S., and S. E. Bentz. 1995. Updated checklist of elm (Ulmus) cultivars <strong>for</strong> use in<br />

North America. J. Arboric. 21:122-131.<br />

_____ , S.-a. He, and A. J. McArdle. 1983. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivated ginkgo. J. Arbor. 9:88-92.<br />

_____ , and A. J. McArdle. 1982a. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivated maples. I. Acer rubrum L. J. Arbor.<br />

8:110-112.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1982b. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivated maples. II. Acer saccharum Marshall. J.<br />

Arbor. 8:164-167.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1982c. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivated maples. III. Acer platanoides L. J. Arbor.<br />

8:241-246.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1982d. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivated maples. IV. Acer saccharinum L. J. Arbor.<br />

8:277-280.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1983a. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivars of Callery pear (Pyrus calleryana). J. Arbor.<br />

9:114-116.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1983b. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivars of honeylocust (Gleditsia triacanthos L.). J.<br />

Arbor. 9:248-252.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1983c. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivars of North American ash (Fraxinus) species. J.<br />

Arbor. 9:271-276.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1984. <strong>Cultivar</strong> checklist <strong>for</strong> Liquidambar and Liriodendron. J. Arbor.<br />

10:309-312.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1985a. <strong>Cultivar</strong> checklist of the large-bracted dogwoods: Cornus florida, C.<br />

kousa, and C. nuttallii. J. Arbor. 11:29-36.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1985b. <strong>Check</strong>lists of cultivars of linden (Tilia) species. J. Arbor. 11:157-


Tucker-80<br />

164.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1986. <strong>Check</strong>list of cultivated Platanus (planetree). J. Arbor. 12:78-83.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1988. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Salix babylonica and other weeping willows. J. Arbor.<br />

14:180-184.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1989. <strong>Check</strong>lists of cultivars in Betula (birch). J. Arbor. 15:170-176.<br />

Saunders, E. 1971-1973. Wagtails book of fuchsias. E. R. M. Saunders, Henfield, England. 3<br />

vols.<br />

Savige, T. J. 1993. The international camellia register. Intern. Camellia Soc. 2 vols.<br />

Schaepman, H. K. E. 1975. Preliminary checklist of cultivated Hedera. Part I: Juvenile<br />

varieties and cultivars of Hedera helix. Amer. Ivy Soc., Mt. Vernon, Virginia.<br />

Schilling, T. 1982. A survey of cultivated Himalayan and Sino-Himalayan Hedychium species.<br />

<strong>Plants</strong>man 4:129-149.<br />

Schalk, P. H. 1985. Sophora japonica. Dendroflora 22:69-72.<br />

Schlauer, J. 1986. Nomenclatural synopsis of carnivorous phanerogamous plants: A world<br />

carnivorous plant list. Carnivorous Pl. Newslett. 15:59-116.<br />

_____ . 1987. "Corrections to the world carnivorous plant list." Carnivorous Pl. Newslett.<br />

16:99-101, 103.<br />

Schmalscheidt, W. 1980. Rhododendron-Züchtung in Deutschland. W. Schmalscheidt,<br />

Oldenburg.<br />

_____ . 1988. Rhododendron für kleine Gärten. Gartenpraxis 14(2):8-15.<br />

_____ . 1984. Potentilla und Pyracantha - Ergebnisse eines Sortenvergleiches. Deutsche<br />

Baumschule 36(5):202-205.<br />

_____ . 1990. Spätblühende Rhododendron-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 16(6):26-32.<br />

_____ . 1993a. Frühblühende Rhododendron-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 19(4):18-25.<br />

_____ . 1993b. Rhododendron-Hybriden mit zweifarbigen Blüten. Gartenpraxis 19(10):44-49.<br />

_____ . 1994. Rhododendron mit gefülten Blüten. Gartenpraxis 20(5):48-53.<br />

_____ . 1996a. Neue Rhododendron-hybriden. Gartenpraxis 22(10):12-20.<br />

_____ . 1996b. Empfehlenswerte Rhododendron-Yakushimanum-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis<br />

22(8):14-16.<br />

Schmid, E. 1990. Schneeglöckchen. Gartenpraxis 16(1):14-15.<br />

_____ . 1998. Tulipa-Fosteriana-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 24(9):28-33.<br />

_____ . 1997. Narcissus-Cyclamineus-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 23(9):40-43.<br />

Schmid, W. G. 1991. The genus Hosta=Giboshi zoku. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Schmidt, M. G. 1962. Ceanothus round up. J. Calif. Hort. Soc. 23(2):64-68.<br />

Schmiemann, G. 1994. Gefülltblühende Helleborus. Gartenpraxis 20(1):8-12.<br />

Schneider, C. 1923. Notes on hybrid Berberis and some other garden <strong>for</strong>ms. J. Arnold Arbor.<br />

4:193-232.<br />

_____ . 1930. Die Gattung Diervilla und Weigela. Mitt. Deutsch. Dendrol. Ges. 42:13-23.<br />

_____ . 1934. Mock oranges. New Fl. & Silva 6:113-117.<br />

Schneider, F. 1965a. Alnus, Carpinus en Ostrya. Dendroflora 2:7-9.<br />

_____ . 1965b. Hypericum. Dendroflora 2:18-22.<br />

_____ . 1965c. Blauw bloeiende dwergrhododendrons. Dendroflora 2:23-27.<br />

_____ . 1966a. Hypericum (II). Dendroflora 3:37-39.


Tucker-81<br />

_____ . 1966b. Rhododendron williamsianum hybriden. Dendroflora 3:47-59.<br />

_____ . 1967. Potentilla fruticosa. Dendroflora 4:42-50, ill. opp. p. 65.<br />

_____ . 1968. Astilbe. Dendroflora 5:3-10.<br />

_____ . 1971. Lonicera nitida en Lonicera pileata. Dendroflora 8:42-45.<br />

_____ . 1986a. Statutory and nonstatutory registration authorities. Acta Hort. 182:219-224.<br />

_____ . 1986b. The concept of distinctness in plant breeders' rights. Pages 393-397 in B. T.<br />

Styles, ed. Infraspecific classification of wild and cultivated plants. Clarendon Press,<br />

Ox<strong>for</strong>d.<br />

_____ , and H. J. van de Laar. 1970. Escallonia. Dendroflora 7:35-41.<br />

Schulz, P. 1965. All about geraniums. Doubleday & Co., Garden City, New York.<br />

Schuster, E. 1990. Louisiana-Iris. Gartenpraxis 16(12):8-12.<br />

_____ . 1992. Neue Seerosen aus aller Welt. Gartenpraxis 18(5):28-37.<br />

_____ . 1997. Erfahrungen mit Seerosensorten aus den USA. Gartenpraxis 23(7):8-12.<br />

Schwerin, F. Graf von. 1919. Acht Beiträge zur Gattung Acer. Fritz Graf von Schwerin,<br />

Wendisch-Wilmersdorf bei Thyrow (Kreis Teltow).<br />

Schwirz, J. 1998. Neue deutsche Rhododendron-Sorten. Pages 19-32 in Rhododendron und<br />

immergrüne Leubgehölze Jahrbuch 1998. Deutsche Rhododendron-Gesellschaft,<br />

Bremen.<br />

Scott, E.L., and A. H. Scott. 1950. Chrysanthemums <strong>for</strong> pleasure. Second ed. Scotts, Bogota,<br />

New Jersey.<br />

Seehawer, G. 2002. Die immergrüne Gattung Osmanthus. Rhododendron Immergrüne<br />

Labugeh. 2002:83-88.<br />

Segall, B. 1995. Hibiscus syriacus. Garden (London) 120:487-491.<br />

Sennen and Teodoro. 1929. Les <strong>for</strong>mes du Myrtus communis L. sur le territoire de Tarragone<br />

(Espagne). Bull. Soc. Dendrol. France 69:5-19.<br />

Sfakiotakis, E., and J. Porlingis, eds. 1997. International symposium on kiwifruit. Acta Hort.<br />

vol. 444.<br />

Sharma, J. N., and H. N. Metcalf. 1968. A horticultural classification of contemporary zinnias.<br />

Proc. Montana Acad. Sci. 28:28-38.<br />

Sharp, M. L., ed. 1957. Camellias illustrated. Rev. ed. Oregon Camellia Soc., Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Shaw, B. 1991. The book of primroses. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Sieber, J. 1990a. Stauden-Neuheiten, die in die letzen 5 Jahren angemeldet wurden. J. Sieber,<br />

Freising, Federal Republic of Germany.<br />

_____ . 1990b. Stauden-Neuheiten, die 1990 angemeldet und registriert wurden (Stand Juli<br />

1990). J. Sieber, Freising, Federal Republic of Germany.<br />

_____ . 1996. New registered cultivars of hardy perennials (since 1993). Pages 78-112 in<br />

Jahrbuch 1965-1995. International Hardy Plant Union.<br />

_____ . 1997. Newly registered cultivars of hardy herbaceous perennials (1996-1997). Pages<br />

59-93 in Jahrbuch 1996/97. International Hardy Plant Union.<br />

_____ . 1998. New cultivars of hardy herbaceous perennials. Pages 64-111 in Jahrbuch 1998.<br />

International Hardy Plant Union.<br />

Simon, G., and H. Simon. 1995. Naming cultivars of perennials. Act Hort. 413:55.<br />

Simon, H. 1991. Die Iris-Spuria-Aue. Gartenpraxis 17(5):22-24.<br />

Simon, L., and P. Cochet. 1906. Nomenclature de tous les noms de roses. Librairie Horticole,


Tucker-82<br />

Paris.<br />

Singer, M. 1885. Dictionnaire des roses. Paul Parey, Berlin.<br />

Singh, Brijendra. 1986. New Bougainvillea cultivars registered. Bougainvillea Newsl. 6(2):17-<br />

18.<br />

_____ . 1987. More cultivars of Bougainvillea. Indian Hort. 32(2):2.<br />

_____ . 1999. The new international Bougainvillea check list. Div. Floriculture Landscaping,<br />

Indian Agric. Res. Inst., New Delhi.<br />

_____ , R. S. Panwar, and S. R. Voleti. 1999. The origin, registration and identification of<br />

Bougainvillea cultivars. Pages 113-116 in S. Andrews, A. Leslie, and C. Alexander, eds.<br />

Taxonomy of cultivated plants: Third international symposium. Roy. Bot. Gard., Kew.<br />

Sitch, P. 1975. Carnations <strong>for</strong> garden and greenhouse. John Gif<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Smee, S. 1984. Growing and breeding nerines. Garden (London) 109:408-413.<br />

Smith, F. C. 1990. A plantsman's guide to carnations and pinks. Ward Lock, London.<br />

Smith, M. N. 1979. Ceanothus of Cali<strong>for</strong>nia: A gardener's guide. Pacific Hort. 40(2):37-45,<br />

(3):36-43.<br />

Smithers, P. 1993. Nerine sarniensis. Garden (London) 118:190-193.<br />

Snijder, R. C. 1999. Sortismentsonderzoek Syringa vulgaris L.: Beschrijving en indentificante<br />

van cultivars. D. Thesis. Landbouwuniversiteit, Wageningen.<br />

Snoeijer, W. 2001. A checklist of some Cannabaceae cultivars. Part 1: Cannabis. Div.<br />

Pharmacognosy, Leiden/Amsterdam Cent. Drug Res.<br />

_____ . 2002. A checklist of some Cannabaceae cultivars. Part b: Humulus. Div.<br />

Pharmacognosy, Leiden/Amsterdam Cent. Drug Res.<br />

Society <strong>for</strong> Japanese Irises. 1988. The 1988 cumulative checklist of Japanese irises. Soc.<br />

Japanese Irises.<br />

Sorvig, K. 1983. The genus Nigella. <strong>Plants</strong>man 4:229-235.<br />

South African Aloe Breeders Association. 1971. <strong>Check</strong> list of aloe cultivars. South African<br />

Aloe Breeders Assoc., Karen Park.<br />

Spalding, G. c. 1975. Complete copy of the Spalding Pelargonium check list. Ed. F. Hartsook.<br />

Intern. Geranium. Soc.<br />

Spellerberg, B. 1997. Euonymus <strong>for</strong>tunei - eine Art mit grosser Sortenvielfalt. Gartenpraxis<br />

23(5):22-27.<br />

Spencer, R. 1995-1997. Horticultural flora of the south-eastern Australia. Vol. 1 & 2. Univ.<br />

New South Wales Press, Sydney.<br />

Spingarn, J. E. 1935. The large-flowered clematis hybrids. Natl. Hort. Mag. 14:64-91.<br />

Spongberg, S. A. 1988. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum. HortScience 23:456-<br />

458.<br />

_____ . 1989. <strong>Cultivar</strong> name registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1987 and 1988. HortScience<br />

24:433-434.<br />

_____ . 1990. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum. HortScience 25:617.<br />

_____ . 1991. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1990. HortScience 26:476.<br />

_____ . 1992. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1991. HortScience 27:303.<br />

_____ . 1993. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1992. HortScience 28:280.<br />

_____ . 1994. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1993. HortScience 29:971.<br />

_____ . 1995. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1994. HortScience 30:446.<br />

_____ . 1996. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1995. HortScience 31:329.


Tucker-83<br />

_____ . 1997. <strong>Cultivar</strong> registration at the Arnold Arboretum 1996. HortScience 32:587.<br />

Sprenger, C. 1911. Neue Mitteilungen über Wistaria chinensis DC. Mitt. Deutsch. Dendrol.<br />

Ges. 20:237-240.<br />

Starcs, K. 1928. Ubersicht über die Arten der Gattung Syringa L. Mitt. Deutsch. Dendrol. Ges.<br />

40:31-49.<br />

Starosta, P. 1998. Bamboos. Evergreen, Köln.<br />

Stebbings, G. 1997. The gardener’s guide to growing irises. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Stein-Zeppelin, H. von. 1990. Iris. Gartenpraxis 16(50:22-25.<br />

Stephenson, R. 1994. Sedum: Cultivated stonecrops. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Stevenson, D. 1999. 1999 Hosta registrations. Hosta J. 31(R):3-60.<br />

_____ . 2000. 2000 Hosta registrations. Hosta J. 32(R):3-45.<br />

Stickel, D. T. 1995. 1994 Report on summer flowering annuals. Pl. Eval. Notes. No. 7.<br />

Stock, K. L. 1984. Rose books. K. L. Stock, Milton Keynes, England.<br />

Stockton, B., G. Stockton, and J. Mason. 1996. Growing pelargoniums and geraniums: A<br />

comlete guide. Hyland House, South Melbourne.<br />

Stout, A. B. 1916. The development of the horticultural varieties of Coleus. J. New York Bot.<br />

Gard. 17:209-218.<br />

_____ . 1934. Daylilies. Macmillan Co., New York.<br />

_____ . 1986. Daylilies. Sagapress, Millwood, New York.<br />

Stover, H. 1983. The sansevieria book. Endangered Species Press, Tustin, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Straley, G. B. 1984. The Kaffir lily. Pacific Hort. 45(4):25-27.<br />

Strand, C. 1998. Asian witch hazels and their hybrids: a history of Hamamelis in cultivation.<br />

<strong>Plants</strong>man 5(4):231-245.<br />

Street, F. 1954. Hardy rhododendrons. Colins, London.<br />

Sutton, J. 1999. The gardener’s guide to growing salvias. Timber press, Portland.<br />

_____ . 2001. The plantfinder’s guide to daisies. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Swan, J. 1995. Apple blossom time. Garden (London) 120:213-217.<br />

Swartley, J. C. 1984. The cultivated hemlocks. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Swinbourne, R. F. G. 1979. Sansevieria in cultivation in Australia. Adelaide Bot. Gard.<br />

Handb. 2.<br />

Swindells, P. 1983. Waterlilies. Croom Helm, London.<br />

_____ . 1989a. A plantsman's guide to primulas. Ward Lock, London.<br />

_____ . 1989b. A preliminary checklist of cultivated Nymphaea. Intern. Water Lily Soc.<br />

Swithinbank, A. 1995. Bouganvillea. Garden (London) 120:634-637.<br />

Symons-Jeune, B. H. B. 1953. Phlox: A flower monograph. Collins, London.<br />

Taylor, J. 1985a. Kniphofia __ A survey. <strong>Plants</strong>man 7:129-160.<br />

_____ . 1985b. The national Kniphofia collection. Hardy Pl. Soc. Bull. 7(1):8-13.<br />

_____ . 1998. Phlomis: The neglected genus. J. Mann Taylor, Westbury-on Severn, England.<br />

Tebbitt, M. C. 1999. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera<br />

1998. HortScience 34:599.<br />

_____ . 2000. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera April<br />

2000-June 2001. HortScience 35:835.<br />

_____ . 2001. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera July<br />

2001-June 2002. HortScience 37:1145.<br />

Thomas, G. S. 1989. The rock garden ant its plants: From grotto to alpine house. Timber Press,


Tucker-84<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____. 1990. Perennial garden plants or the modern florilegium. Saga Press, Portland.<br />

Thomsen-Stork, M. 1995. Neue Taglilien aus den USA. Gartenpraxis 21(12):8-13.<br />

_____ . 1996. Neue Hemerocallis-Sorten aus europäischer Züchtung. Gartenpraxis 22(7):8-14.<br />

Thompson, M. L. 1976-1978. The Thompson begonia guide. Second ed. Edward J. Thompson,<br />

Southampton, New York. 3 vols. + suppl.<br />

_____ . 1984. Begonias: 1984 update. E. J. Thompson, Southampton, New York.<br />

_____ , and E. J. Thompson. 1980. The Thompson begonia guide. Second edition. Supplement<br />

1. Exhibition manual. Edward J. Thompson, Southampton, New York.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1981. Begonias: The complete reference. Times Books, New York.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1982. The Thompson begonia guide. Second ed. Supplement 1. Exhibition<br />

manual. Revision and additional sheets. Edward J. Thompson, Southampton, New<br />

York.<br />

Thorne, T. 1959. Fuchsias <strong>for</strong> all purposes. W. H. & L. Collingridge, London.<br />

Thornton, E. H., and S. H. Thornton. 1985. The exotic Plumeria (frangipani). Plumeria<br />

Specialities, Houston, Texas.<br />

Throckmorton, T. D. n.d. [yearly] The daffodil data bank of the A.D.S. Amer. Daffodil Soc.<br />

Tompsett, A. A. 1982. Daffodil varieties. Minist. Agric. Fish. Food Ref. Book 350.<br />

Toogood, A., and D. Hide. 1996. Autumn sparklers. Garden (London) 121:646-649.<br />

Toomey, M., and E. Leeds. 2001. An illustrated encyclopedia of clematis. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

Toubøl, U. 1981. Clonal variation in Anemone nemorosa. <strong>Plants</strong>man 3:167-174.<br />

Toussaint, A. 1997. La systématique du genre Viburnum. Belg. Dendrol. 1997:36-51.<br />

Touw, A. 1963. Een voorlopig overzicht van de Nederlandse iepen. Jaarb. Ned. Dendrol. Ver.<br />

22:57-62.<br />

Townsend, K. J. 1984. Achimenes __ the hot water plants. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5:193-205.<br />

Traub, H. P. 1961. The genus ×Crinodonna 1921-1960. Catalog of ×Crinodonna cultivars. Pl.<br />

Life 17:65-74.<br />

_____ , W. R. Ballard, L. F. Morton, W. D. Morton, and E. T. Authement. 1964. Catalog of<br />

hybrid amaryllis cultivars 1799 to Dec. 31, 1963. Pl. Life 20 (Suppl.):1-21.<br />

_____ , and L. S. Hannibal. 1960. Catalog of Brunsvigia cultivars 1837-1960. Pl. Life 16:39-<br />

62.<br />

Trehane, P. 1989. Index hortensis. Volume 1: Perennials. Quarterjack Publ., Wimborne,<br />

England.<br />

_____ . 1995. Additions to the International Conifer Register 1985-1992. Int. Dendrol. Society<br />

Year Book 1994: 61-63.<br />

_____ , C. D. Brickell, B. R. Baum, W. L. A. Hetterscheid, A. C. Leslie, J. McNeill, S. A.<br />

Spongberg, and F. Vrugtman, eds. 1995. The international code of botanical<br />

nomenclature <strong>for</strong> cultivated plants — 1995. Quarterjack Publ., Winborne, Dorset,<br />

United Kingdom.<br />

Tresender, N. G. 1978. Magnolias. Faber & Faber, London.<br />

Tretter, A. 1976. African violet master variety list 1966-1976. Registered varieties 1948-1976.<br />

African Violet Soc. Amer., Knoxville, Tennessee.<br />

Tripp, K. E. 1993. Sugi. Amer. Nurseryman 178(7):26-39.<br />

Tromp, J. 1986. ‘Boskoops Koninklike’ (1861-1986). Koninklijke Vereeniging voor


Tucker-85<br />

Boskoopse Culturen, Boskoop, NL.<br />

Tucker, A. O., and T. DeBaggio. 2000. The big book of herbs. Interweave Press, Loveland,<br />

Colorado.<br />

_____ , and K. J. W. Hensen. 1985. The cultivars of lavender and lavandin. Baileya 22:168-<br />

177.<br />

_____ , and M. J. Maciarello. 1986. The essential oils of some rosemary cultivars. Flavour &<br />

Fragrance J. 1:137-142.<br />

_____ , and _____ . 1990. Essential oils of cultivars of Dalmatian sage (Salvia officinalis L.). J.<br />

Essential Oil Res. 2:139-144.<br />

_____ , and E. D. Rollins. 1989. The species, hybrids, and cultivars of Origanum (Lamiaceae)<br />

cultivated in the United States. Baileya 23:14-27.<br />

Turner, R. 1983. A review of spurges <strong>for</strong> the garden. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5:129-156.<br />

_____ . 1995. Euphorbias: A gardeners’ guide. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Tuyama, T. 1968. Camellias of Japan. Takeda Sci. Found., Osaka, Japan. 2 vols.<br />

Underhill, T. L. 1990. Heaths and heathers: The grower's encyclopedia. David & Charles,<br />

London.<br />

Unwin, C. W. J. 1926. Sweet peas: Their history, development and culture. D. Appleton &<br />

Co., New York.<br />

Vail, R. 1984. Platycerium hobbyist's handbook. Desert Biol. Publ., Dona Ana, New Mexico.<br />

Valavanis, W. N. 1976. The Japanese five needle pine: Nature, gardens, bonsai, taxonomy.<br />

Encyclopedia of Classical bonsai art Vol. 2. Symmes Systems, Atlanta, Georgia.<br />

Valder, P. 1995. Wisterias: Comprehensive guide. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Vanderplank, J. 1991. Passion flowers and passion fruit. MIT Press, Cambridge,<br />

Massachusetts.<br />

_____ . 1996. Passion flowers. Second ed. MIT Press, Cambridge, Massachusetts.<br />

_____ . 1998. Empfehlungswerte Passiflora-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis 24(1):55-59.<br />

_____ . 2000. Passion flowers. MIT Press, Cambridge, Massachusetts.<br />

Van Eseltine, G. P. 1933. Notes on the species of apples. II. The Japanese flowering<br />

crabapples of the sieboldii group and their hybrids. New York Agric. Exp. Sta. Techn.<br />

Bull. 214:1-21.<br />

_____ . 1934. <strong>Ornamental</strong> apples and crabapples. New York Agric. Exp. Sta. Circ. 139:1-13.<br />

van Rammsdonk, L. W. D., and T. de Vries. 1996. <strong>Cultivar</strong> classification in Tulipa L.<br />

(Liliaceae). Acta Bot. Neerl. 45:183-198.<br />

Van Rensselaer, M., and H. E. McMinn. 1942. Ceanothus. Santa Barbara Bot. Gard., Santa<br />

Barbara, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

van Scheepen, J. 1995. <strong>Cultivar</strong> groups in the genus Tulipa L. (Liliaceae). Acta Hort.<br />

413:137-143.<br />

_____ , ed. 1996. Classified list and international register of tulip names. Koninklijke<br />

Algemeene Vereeniging voor Bloembollencultuur, Hillegom.<br />

van Trier, H. 1995. Gartenwürdige Hydrangea. Gartenpraxis 21(3):22-29.<br />

_____ . 1998. Zaubernüsse mit neuen Qualitäten. Gartenpraxis 24(1):8-11.<br />

Venema, H. J. 1958. Helenium sortiment. Tuinbouwgids 1958:514-517.<br />

Vernon, J. 1997. Multicoloured maize. Garden (London) 122:648-651.<br />

Verrier, S. 1991. Rosa rugosa. Capability's Books, Deer Park, Wisconsin.<br />

_____ . 1995. Rosa gallica. Capability's Books, Deer Park, Wisconsin.


Tucker-86<br />

Vertrees, J. D. 1978. Japanese maples. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

_____ . 1979. Notes on variants of Acer circinatum Pursh. Int. Dendrol. Soc. Year Book<br />

1978:82-84.<br />

_____ . 1987. Japanese maples. 2nd ed. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Vogel, P. de. 1969. Pernettya: Keuringen 1968. Dendroflora 6:75-76.<br />

Vogts, M. 1982. South Africa's Proteaceae: know them and grow them. Proteaflora<br />

Enterprises, Melbourne.<br />

Voloshin, M. P. 1956. Review of laurel <strong>for</strong>ms in Crimea. Trudy Gosud. Nititsk. Bot. Sada<br />

29:85-94.<br />

Vrugtman, F. 1972. Bibliography of cultivar name registration. Chron. Hort. 12(3):47-50.<br />

_____ . 1973. Bibliography of cultivar name registration, Addendum 1. Chron Hort. 13(3):54.<br />

_____ . 1977. Bibliography of cultivar name registration. Addendum 2. Chron Hort. 17(2):29-<br />

30.<br />

_____ . 1981. Bibliography of cultivar name registration. Addendum 3. Chron Hort.<br />

21(2/3):29-31.<br />

_____ . 1984. Directory of International Registration Authorities <strong>for</strong> cultivar names. Chron.<br />

Hort. 24(1):4-6.<br />

_____ . 1985. Directory of International Registration Authorities <strong>for</strong> cultivar names. Addenda<br />

& corrigenda. Chron. Hort. 25(3):42.<br />

_____ . 1986. Directory of International Registration Authorities <strong>for</strong> cultivar names: Further<br />

Addenda & Corrigenda. Roy. Bot. Gard., Hamilton, Canada.<br />

_____ . 1988. Lilac registration 1986-87. HortScience 23:458.<br />

_____ . 1989a. Lilac registration 1988. HortScience 24:435-436.<br />

_____ . 1989b. Corrigenda. Lilac registration 1986-1987. HortScience 24:436.<br />

_____ . 1989c. Directory of International Registration Authorities <strong>for</strong> cultivar names: Further<br />

Addenda & Corrigenda. Roy. Bot. Gard., Hamilton, Canada.<br />

_____ . 1990a. Lilac registration 1989. HortScience 25:618.<br />

_____ . 1990b. Directory of International Registration Authorities <strong>for</strong> cultivar names.<br />

HortScience 25:618-621.<br />

_____ . 1990c. Addenda & corrigenda to the tentative international register of cultivar names in<br />

the genus Syringa L. (1976). Roy. Bot. Gard., Hamilton, Canada.<br />

_____ . 1990d. Directory of International Registration Authorities <strong>for</strong> cultivar names. Chron.<br />

Bot. 30:60-62.<br />

_____ . 1991. Lilac registration 1990. HortScience 26:476-477.<br />

_____ . 1994a. International registration of cultivar names <strong>for</strong> unassigned woody genera 1993.<br />

HortScience 29:970-971.<br />

_____ . 1994b. Lilac registration 1993. HortScience 29:972.<br />

_____ . 1995. Directory of international registration authorities <strong>for</strong> cultivar names (IRAs). Acta<br />

Hort. 413:187-193.<br />

_____ . 1996. Lilac registrations 1995. HortScience 31:327-328.<br />

_____ . 1997. Lilac cultivar name registration 1996. HortScience 32:587-588.<br />

_____ . 1998. Lilac cultivar name registration 1997. HortScience 33:588-589.


Tucker-87<br />

_____ . 1999. Lilac cultivar name registration 1998. HortScience 34:600.<br />

_____ . 2000. Lilac cultivar name registration 2000. HortScience 35:836.<br />

_____ . 2002. Lilac cultivar name registration 2001. HortScience 37:1145.<br />

Wachsmuth, B. 1998. Renaissance der Duft- und Parmaveilchen. Gartenpraxis 24(1):12-19.<br />

Wagenknecht, B. L. 1961a. Registration lists of cultivar names in Gleditsia L. Arnoldia 21:31-<br />

34.<br />

_____ . 1961b. Registration lists of cultivar names in the genus Pieris D. Don. Arnoldia 21:47-<br />

50.<br />

_____ . 1965. Registration lists of cultivar names in Buxus L. Boxwood Bull. 4:35-41.<br />

_____ . 1967. Addenda to the registration lists of cultivar names in Buxus L. Boxwood Bull.<br />

7:1.<br />

_____ . 1971. Addenda to the registration lists of cultivar names in Buxus L. Boxwood Bull.<br />

11:1.<br />

_____ . 1972. Addenda to the registration lists of cultivar names in Buxus L. Boxwood Bull.<br />

11:45.<br />

Waite, R. 1996. Vision of paradise. Garden (London) 121:258-261.<br />

Walker, J. and J. Kenyon. 1997. Vireyas: A practical gardening guide. Timber Press, Portland,<br />

Oregon.<br />

Walsweer, A. 1988. Geraniumgids. A. Walsweer, Heerde, Netherlands.<br />

Wandell, W. N. 1989. Handbook of landscape tree cultivars. East Prairie Publ. Co., Gladstone,<br />

Illinois.<br />

Warburg, O., and E. F. Warburg. 1930. A preliminary study of the genus Cistus. J. Roy. Hort.<br />

Soc. 55:1-52.<br />

_____ . 1931. Cistus hybrids. J. Roy. Hort. Soc. 56:217-224.<br />

Warburton, B. 1986. <strong>Check</strong> list. Society <strong>for</strong> Siberian irises. Section II. Varietal listing. Soc.<br />

Siberian Irises.<br />

Ward, P. 1997. Primroses and polyanthus. B. T. Bats<strong>for</strong>d, London.<br />

Way, D., and P. James. 1998. The gardener’s guide to growing penstemons. Timber Press,<br />

Portland, Oregon.<br />

Weaver, R. E. 1976a. The witch hazel family (Hamamelidaceae). Arnoldia 36:69-109.<br />

_____ . 1976b. Selected maples <strong>for</strong> shade and ornamental planting. Arnoldia 36:146-176.<br />

Webb, D. A., and R. J. Gornall. 1989. A manual of saxifrages. Timber Press, Portland, Oregon.<br />

Weber, C. 1963. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s in the genus Chaenomeles. Arnoldia 23:17-75.<br />

Webber, S., ed. 1988. Daylily encyclopedia. Webber Gard., Damascus, Maryland.<br />

Webber, S. 1995. Erfahrungen mit neueren Bartirissorten. Gartenpraxis 21(6):8-11.<br />

Wehrhahn, H. R. 1931. Die Gartenstauden. Paul Parey, Berlin. 2 vols.<br />

Wieting, J. 1994. Kalmien - unbekannte Schönheiten aus Nordamerika. Deutsche Baumschule<br />

12:606-608.<br />

Welch, H. J. 1979. Manual of dwarf conifers. Theophrastus, Little Compton, Rhode Island.<br />

_____ . 1991. The conifer manual. Vol. 1. Kluwer Acad. Publ., Dordrecht.<br />

_____ , and G. Haddow. 1993. The world checklist of conifers. World Conifer Datapool,<br />

Combe Martin, United Kingdom.<br />

Wellensiek, S. J. 1961. The breeding of diploid cultivars of Cyclamen persicum. Euphytica<br />

10:259-268.<br />

_____ , J. Doorenbos, J. van Bragt, and R. A. H. Legro. 1961. Cyclamen: A descriptive list of


Tucker-88<br />

cultivars. Laboratorium voor Truinbouwplantenteelt, Landbouwhogeschool,<br />

Wageningen.<br />

Wemyss-Cooke, J. n.d. Primulas old and new: Auriculas . primulas . primroses . polyanthus.<br />

David & Charles, London.<br />

Werken, H. van de. 1988. Mutant offspring: Five new <strong>for</strong>sythia cultivars are the progeny of<br />

one irradiated Forsythia × intermedia 'Lynwood Gold.' Amer. Nurseryman 167(1):127-<br />

132.<br />

White, K., and S. White. 1994. Thyme in the garden. Natl. Council Conserv. Pl. Garden.,<br />

Woking, England.<br />

White, S. 1998. Origanum: The herb marjoram and its relatives. Natl. Council Conserv. Pl.<br />

Garden., Woking, England..<br />

Wickenkamp, F., C. M. Seifert, and B. Shepard, eds. 1995. Spuria iris introductions and<br />

registrations 1995. Spuria Iris Soc., Am. Iris Soc.<br />

Wieting, J. 1992. Erfahrungen mit brakteentragenden Cornus. Gartenpraxis 18(12):8-12.<br />

Wilfret, G. J. 1984. Caladiums to know and grow. Foliage Dig. 7(7):1-3.<br />

Wilkins, J. 2001. 2001 Hosta registrations. Hosta J. 33(3):3-33.<br />

Wilson, E. H. 1916. The cherries of Japan. Publ. Arnold Arbor. No. 7.<br />

_____ . 1923. The hortensias. Hydrangea macrophylla DC. and Hydrangea serrata DC. J.<br />

Arnold Arbor. 4:233-246.<br />

Wilson, H. V. P. 1965. The joy of geraniums. M. Barrows and Co., New York.<br />

Winterrowd, W. 2001. Forget-me-nots. Gardener 1(1):14-16.<br />

Winters, H,. F. 1973. New impatiens from New Guinea. Amer. Hort. 52(3):16-22.<br />

Wise, B. 1995. Pacific Coast jewels. Garden (London) 120:252-255.<br />

Wister, J. C. 1927. A lilac checklist. Natl. Hort. Mag. 6:1-16.<br />

_____ . 1942. Lilacs <strong>for</strong> America. Arthur Hoyt Scott Hort. Found., Swarthmore Col.,<br />

Swarthmore, Pennsylvania.<br />

_____ . 1943. Lilacs <strong>for</strong> America. Revised and corrected ed. Arthur Hoyt Scott Hort. Found.,<br />

Swarthmore Col., Swarthmore, Pennsylvania.<br />

_____ . 1953a. Lilacs <strong>for</strong> America. Arthur Hoyt Scott Hort. Found., Swarthmore Col.,<br />

Swarthmore, Pennsylvania.<br />

_____ . 1953b. Preliminary holly check list. Bull. Holly Soc. Amer. 6:1-56.<br />

_____ . 1954. Swarthmore plant notes: A record of all plants grown by the Arthur Hoyt Scott<br />

Horticultural Foundation, Swarthmore College, Swarthmore, Delaware County,<br />

Pennsylvania in its first twenty-five years 1930-1954. Swarthmore. 3 vols.<br />

_____ , ed. 1962. The peonies. Amer. Hort. Soc., Washington, D.C.<br />

_____ . 1963. Supplementary registration list of cultivar names in Syringa L. registered 1963.<br />

Arnoldia 23:77-83.<br />

Wolf, E. 1923. Sambucus racemosa Linné. Mitt. Deutsch. Dendrol. Ges. 33:24-31.<br />

Woodroof, W. E., and W. W. Donnan, ed. 1990. Camellia nomenclature. 20th rev. ed.<br />

Southern Cali<strong>for</strong>nia Camellia Soc., Arcadia, Cali<strong>for</strong>nia.<br />

Wright, A. H. 1927. The dwarf bearded iris: I. A preliminary working list. Cornell Univ.<br />

Agric. Exp. Sta.<br />

Wright, D. 1980. Philadelphus. <strong>Plants</strong>man 2:104-116.<br />

_____ . 1981. Sorbus: A gardener's evaluation. <strong>Plants</strong>man 3:65-98.<br />

_____ . 1982. Hamamelidaceae: A survey of the genera in cultivation. <strong>Plants</strong>man 4:29-53.


Tucker-89<br />

_____ . 1983a. Eucryphia, Hoheria and Plagianthus. <strong>Plants</strong>man 5:167-185.<br />

_____ . 1983b. Climbing honeysuckles. <strong>Plants</strong>man 4:236-252.<br />

_____ . 1985. Aesculus in the garden. <strong>Plants</strong>man 6:228-247.<br />

_____ . 1986. Notes on Carpinus and Ostrya. <strong>Plants</strong>man 7:212-216.<br />

Wright, M. 1984. The complete handbook of garden plants. Facts on File, New York.<br />

Wyman, D. 1943. Crab apples <strong>for</strong> America. Amer. Assoc. Bot. Gard. Arbor. and Arnold<br />

Arbor., Jamaica Plain, Massachusetts.<br />

_____ . 1955. Crab apples <strong>for</strong> America. Amer. Assoc. Bot. Gard. Arbor.<br />

_____ . 1958. The shrub altheas. Arnoldia 18:45-51.<br />

_____ . 1960. Ilex crenata and its varieties. Arnoldia 20:41-46.<br />

_____ . 1961a. Registration lists of cultivated names of <strong>for</strong>sythias. Arnoldia 21:39-42.<br />

_____ . 1961b. Forsythias. Amer. Hort. Mag. 40:190-197.<br />

_____ . 1961c. Many <strong>for</strong>ms of four arborvitae species grown in the trade. Amer. Nurseryman<br />

113(7):10-11, 67-73, 76-79.<br />

_____ . 1962a. The majestic beeches. Arnoldia 22:1-7.<br />

_____ . 1962b. Barberries. Arnoldia 22:9-16.<br />

_____ . 1962c. The birches. Arnoldia 22:17-23.<br />

_____ . 1962d. Hawthorns. Arnoldia 22:25-32.<br />

_____ . 1962e. The lindens. Arnoldia 22:69-76.<br />

_____ . 1962f. The oaks. Arnolida 22:77-87.<br />

_____ . 1963a. International plant registration. Arnoldia 23:85-92.<br />

_____ . 1963b. New plants registered. Arnoldia 23:111-118.<br />

_____ . 1964. Registration list of cultivar names of Fagus L. Arnoldia 24:1-8.<br />

_____ . 1965. The mock-oranges. Arnoldia 25:29-36.<br />

_____ . 1966. More plant registrations. Arnoldia 26:13-16.<br />

_____ . 1967. More plant registrations. Arnoldia 27:61-66.<br />

_____ . 1968. Potentilla fruticosa varieties in the Arnold Arboretum. Arnoldia 28:125-131.<br />

_____ . 1969a. Plant registrations. Arnoldia 29:1-8.<br />

_____ . 1969b. The mountain-ashes. Arnoldia 29:61-68.<br />

_____ . 1974. Dwarf shrubs. Macmillan Publ. Co., New York.<br />

Yeo, C. 1995. Salvias I. Pleasant View Nursery, Newton Abbott, England.<br />

_____ . 1997. Salvias II. Pleasant View Nursery, Newton Abbott, England.<br />

Yeo, P. F. 1964. Lonicera pileata and L. nitida in cultivation. Baileya 12:56-66.<br />

_____ . 1971a. Further observations on Bergenia in cultivation. Kew Bull. 26:47-56.<br />

_____ . 1971b. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Bergenia [Saxifragaceae] in the British Isles. Baileya 18:96-112.<br />

_____ . 1975. The hybrid origin of some cultivated snowdrops [Galanthus-Amaryllidaceae].<br />

Baileya 19:157-162.<br />

_____ . 1985. Hardy geraniums. Croom Helm, London.<br />

Yinger, B. R., and G. R. Hahn. 1985. <strong>Cultivar</strong>s of Japanese plants at Brookside __ II. Arnoldia<br />

45(2):7-18.


Tucker-90<br />

Yokoi, M., and Y. Hirose. 1978. Variegated plants. Seibundo Shinkosa Publ. Co., Japan.<br />

Zhang, D., M. A. Dirr, and R. A. Price. 2000. Discrimination and genetic diversity of<br />

Cephalotaxus accessions using AFLP markers. J. Amer. Soc. Hort. Sci. 125:404-412.<br />

Zimmer, K., and R. Noack. 1998. Callistephus chinensis (L.) Nees, Petunia – Hybriden und<br />

Tagetes – Hybriden. Sortenlisten bis 1995. Ulmer, Stutgart, Germany.<br />

zur Linden, P., and B. zur Linden. 1993. Attraktive Rodgersia-Hybriden. Gartenpraxis<br />

19(5):48-51.<br />

_____ . 1994. Ein aktuelles Helenium-Sortiment. Gartenpraxis 20(8):8-11.

Hooray! Your file is uploaded and ready to be published.

Saved successfully!

Ooh no, something went wrong!